THE SLEEPER AWAKES
A Revised Edition of "When the Sleeper Wakes"
H.G. WELLS
1899
PREFACE TO THE NEW EDITION
When the Sleeper Wakes, whose title I have now altered to The
Sleeper
Awakes, was first published as a book in 1899 after a serial
appearance
in the Graphic and one or two American and colonial
periodicals. It is
one of the most ambitious and least satisfactory of my
books, and I have
taken the opportunity afforded by this reprinting to make a
number of
excisions and alterations. Like most of my earlier work, it was
written
under considerable pressure; there are marks of haste not only in
the
writing of the latter part, but in the very construction of the
story.
Except for certain streaks of a slovenliness which seems to be an
almost
unavoidable defect in me, there is little to be ashamed of in the
writing
of the opening portion; but it will be fairly manifest to the critic
that
instead of being put aside and thought over through a
leisurely
interlude, the ill-conceived latter part was pushed to its end. I
was at
that time overworked, and badly in need of a holiday. In addition
to
various necessary journalistic tasks, I had in hand another book,
Love
and Mr. Lewisham, which had taken a very much stronger hold
upon my
affections than this present story. My circumstances demanded that
one or
other should be finished before I took any rest, and so I wound up
the
Sleeper sufficiently to make it a marketable work, hoping to be able
to
revise it before the book printers at any rate got hold of it.
But
fortune was against me. I came back to England from Italy only to
fall
dangerously ill, and I still remember the impotent rage and strain of
my
attempt to put some sort of finish to my story of Mr. Lewisham, with
my
temperature at a hundred and two. I couldn't endure the thought
of
leaving that book a fragment. I did afterwards contrive to save it
from
the consequences of that febrile spurt--Love and Mr. Lewisham
is indeed
one of my most carefully balanced books--but the Sleeper escaped
me.
It is twelve years now since the Sleeper was written, and that young
man
of thirty-one is already too remote for me to attempt any very
drastic
reconstruction of his work. I have played now merely the part of
an
editorial elder brother: cut out relentlessly a number of long
tiresome
passages that showed all too plainly the fagged, toiling brain, the
heavy
sluggish driven pen, and straightened out certain indecisions
at the
end. Except for that, I have done no more than hack here and there
at
clumsy phrases and repetitions. The worst thing in the earlier
version,
and the thing that rankled most in my mind, was the treatment of
the
relations of Helen Wotton and Graham. Haste in art is almost
always
vulgarisation, and I slipped into the obvious vulgarity of making
what
the newspaper syndicates call a "love interest" out of Helen. There
was
even a clumsy intimation that instead of going up in the
flying-machine
to fight, Graham might have given in to Ostrog, and married
Helen. I have
now removed the suggestion of these uncanny connubialities. Not
the
slightest intimation of any sexual interest could in truth have
arisen
between these two. They loved and kissed one another, but as a girl
and
her heroic grandfather might love, and in a crisis kiss. I have found
it
possible, without any very serious disarrangement, to clear all
that
objectionable stuff out of the story, and so a little ease my
conscience
on the score of this ungainly lapse. I have also, with a few
strokes of
the pen, eliminated certain dishonest and regrettable suggestions
that
the People beat Ostrog. My Graham dies, as all his kind must die, with
no
certainty of either victory or defeat.
Who will win--Ostrog or the People? A thousand years hence that will
still
be just the open question we leave to-day.
H.G. WELLS.
CONTENTS
I. INSOMNIA
II. THE TRANCE
III. THE AWAKENING
IV. THE SOUND OF A TUMULT
V. THE MOVING WAYS
VI. THE HALL OF THE ATLAS
VII. IN THE SILENT ROOMS
VIII. THE ROOF SPACES
IX. THE PEOPLE MARCH
X. THE BATTLE OF THE DARKNESS
XI. THE OLD MAN WHO KNEW EVERYTHING
XII. OSTROG
XIII. THE END OF THE OLD ORDER
XIV. FROM THE CROW'S NEST
XV. PROMINENT PEOPLE
XVI. THE MONOPLANE
XVII. THREE DAYS
XVIII. GRAHAM REMEMBERS
XIX. OSTROG'S POINT OF VIEW
XX. IN THE CITY WAYS
XXI. THE UNDER-SIDE
XXII. THE STRUGGLE IN THE COUNCIL HOUSE
XXIII. GRAHAM SPEAKS HIS WORD
XXIV. WHILE THE AEROPLANES WERE COMING
XXV. THE COMING OF THE AEROPLANES
THE SLEEPER AWAKES
CHAPTER I
INSOMNIA
One afternoon, at low water, Mr. Isbister, a young artist lodging
at
Boscastle, walked from that place to the picturesque cove of
Pentargen,
desiring to examine the caves there. Halfway down the precipitous
path to
the Pentargen beach he came suddenly upon a man sitting in an
attitude of
profound distress beneath a projecting mass of rock. The hands of
this
man hung limply over his knees, his eyes were red and staring before
him,
and his face was wet with tears.
He glanced round at Isbister's footfall. Both men were
disconcerted,
Isbister the more so, and, to override the awkwardness of his
involuntary
pause, he remarked, with an air of mature conviction, that the
weather
was hot for the time of year.
"Very," answered the stranger shortly, hesitated a second, and added in
a
colourless tone, "I can't sleep."
Isbister stopped abruptly. "No?" was all he said, but his bearing
conveyed
his helpful impulse.
"It may sound incredible," said the stranger, turning weary eyes
to
Isbister's face and emphasizing his words with a languid hand, "but
I
have had no sleep--no sleep at all for six nights."
"Had advice?"
"Yes. Bad advice for the most part. Drugs. My nervous system.... They
are
all very well for the run of people. It's hard to explain. I dare
not
take ... sufficiently powerful drugs."
"That makes it difficult," said Isbister.
He stood helplessly in the narrow path, perplexed what to do. Clearly
the
man wanted to talk. An idea natural enough under the
circumstances,
prompted him to keep the conversation going. "I've never
suffered from
sleeplessness myself," he said in a tone of commonplace gossip,
"but in
those cases I have known, people have usually found something--"
"I dare make no experiments."
He spoke wearily. He gave a gesture of rejection, and for a space both
men
were silent.
"Exercise?" suggested Isbister diffidently, with a glance from
his
interlocutor's face of wretchedness to the touring costume he wore.
"That is what I have tried. Unwisely perhaps. I have followed the
coast,
day after day--from New Quay. It has only added muscular fatigue to
the
mental. The cause of this unrest was overwork--trouble. There
was
something--"
He stopped as if from sheer fatigue. He rubbed his forehead with a
lean
hand. He resumed speech like one who talks to himself.
"I am a lone wolf, a solitary man, wandering through a world in which
I
have no part. I am wifeless--childless--who is it speaks of the
childless
as the dead twigs on the tree of life? I am wifeless, childless--I
could
find no duty to do. No desire even in my heart. One thing at last I
set
myself to do.
"I said, I _will_ do this, and to do it, to overcome the inertia of
this
dull body, I resorted to drugs. Great God, I've had enough of drugs!
I
don't know if _you_ feel the heavy inconvenience of the body,
its
exasperating demand of time from the mind--time--life! Live! We only
live
in patches. We have to eat, and then comes the dull
digestive
complacencies--or irritations. We have to take the air or else
our
thoughts grow sluggish, stupid, run into gulfs and blind alleys.
A
thousand distractions arise from within and without, and then
comes
drowsiness and sleep. Men seem to live for sleep. How little of a
man's
day is his own--even at the best! And then come those false
friends,
those Thug helpers, the alkaloids that stifle natural fatigue and
kill
rest--black coffee, cocaine--"
"I see," said Isbister.
"I did my work," said the sleepless man with a querulous intonation.
"And this is the price?"
"Yes."
For a little while the two remained without speaking.
"You cannot imagine the craving for rest that I feel--a hunger and
thirst.
For six long days, since my work was done, my mind has been a
whirlpool,
swift, unprogressive and incessant, a torrent of thoughts
leading nowhere,
spinning round swift and steady--" He paused. "Towards
the gulf."
"You must sleep," said Isbister decisively, and with an air of a
remedy
discovered. "Certainly you must sleep."
"My mind is perfectly lucid. It was never clearer. But I know I am
drawing
towards the vortex. Presently--"
"Yes?"
"You have seen things go down an eddy? Out of the light of the day, out
of
this sweet world of sanity--down--"
"But," expostulated Isbister.
The man threw out a hand towards him, and his eyes were wild, and
his
voice suddenly high. "I shall kill myself. If in no other way--at
the
foot of yonder dark precipice there, where the waves are green, and
the
white surge lifts and falls, and that little thread of water
trembles
down. There at any rate is ... sleep."
"That's unreasonable," said Isbister, startled at the man's
hysterical
gust of emotion. "Drugs are better than that."
"There at any rate is sleep," repeated the stranger, not heeding him.
Isbister looked at him. "It's not a cert, you know," he remarked.
"There's
a cliff like that at Lulworth Cove--as high, anyhow--and a
little girl fell
from top to bottom. And lives to-day--sound and well."
"But those rocks there?"
"One might lie on them rather dismally through a cold night, broken
bones
grating as one shivered, chill water splashing over you. Eh?"
Their eyes met. "Sorry to upset your ideals," said Isbister with a
sense
of devil-may-careish brilliance. "But a suicide over that cliff (or
any
cliff for the matter of that), really, as an artist--" He laughed.
"It's
so damned amateurish."
"But the other thing," said the sleepless man irritably, "the other
thing.
No man can keep sane if night after night--"
"Have you been walking along this coast alone?"
"Yes."
"Silly sort of thing to do. If you'll excuse my saying so. Alone! As
you
say; body fag is no cure for brain fag. Who told you to? No
wonder;
walking! And the sun on your head, heat, fag, solitude, all the day
long,
and then, I suppose, you go to bed and try very hard--eh?"
Isbister stopped short and looked at the sufferer doubtfully.
"Look at these rocks!" cried the seated man with a sudden force
of
gesture. "Look at that sea that has shone and quivered there for
ever!
See the white spume rush into darkness under that great cliff. And
this
blue vault, with the blinding sun pouring from the dome of it. It is
your
world. You accept it, you rejoice in it. It warms and supports
and
delights you. And for me--"
He turned his head and showed a ghastly face, bloodshot pallid eyes
and
bloodless lips. He spoke almost in a whisper. "It is the garment of
my
misery. The whole world ... is the garment of my misery."
Isbister looked at all the wild beauty of the sunlit cliffs about them
and
back to that face of despair. For a moment he was silent.
He started, and made a gesture of impatient rejection. "You get a
night's
sleep," he said, "and you won't see much misery out here. Take
my word for
it."
He was quite sure now that this was a providential encounter. Only half
an
hour ago he had been feeling horribly bored. Here was employment the
bare
thought of which, was righteous self-applause. He took possession
forthwith.
The first need of this exhausted being was companionship. He
flung himself
down on the steeply sloping turf beside the motionless
seated figure, and
threw out a skirmishing line of gossip.
His hearer lapsed into apathy; he stared dismally seaward, and spoke
only
in answer to Isbister's direct questions--and not to all of those. But
he
made no objection to this benevolent intrusion upon his despair.
He seemed even grateful, and when presently Isbister, feeling that
his
unsupported talk was losing vigour, suggested that they should
reascend
the steep and return towards Boscastle, alleging the view into
Blackapit,
he submitted quietly. Halfway up he began talking to himself,
and
abruptly turned a ghastly face on his helper. "What can be happening?"
he
asked with a gaunt illustrative hand. "What can be happening? Spin,
spin,
spin, spin. It goes round and round, round and round for evermore."
He stood with his hand circling.
"It's all right, old chap," said Isbister with the air of an old
friend.
"Don't worry yourself. Trust to me,"
The man dropped his hand and turned again. They went over the brow and
to
the headland beyond Penally, with the sleepless man gesticulating
ever
and again, and speaking fragmentary things concerning his whirling
brain.
At the headland they stood by the seat that looks into the dark
mysteries
of Blackapit, and then he sat down. Isbister had resumed his
talk
whenever the path had widened sufficiently for them to walk abreast.
He
was enlarging upon the complex difficulty of making Boscastle Harbour
in
bad weather, when suddenly and quite irrelevantly his
companion
interrupted him again.
"My head is not like what it was," he said, gesticulating for want
of
expressive phrases. "It's not like what it was. There is a sort
of
oppression, a weight. No--not drowsiness, would God it were! It is
like
a shadow, a deep shadow falling suddenly and swiftly across
something
busy. Spin, spin into the darkness. The tumult of thought, the
confusion,
the eddy and eddy. I can't express it. I can hardly keep my mind
on
it--steadily enough to tell you."
He stopped feebly.
"Don't trouble, old chap," said Isbister. "I think I can understand.
At
any rate, it don't matter very much just at present about telling
me,
you know."
The sleepless man thrust his knuckles into his eyes and rubbed
them.
Isbister talked for awhile while this rubbing continued, and then he
had
a fresh idea. "Come down to my room," he said, "and try a pipe. I
can
show you some sketches of this Blackapit. If you'd care?"
The other rose obediently and followed him down the steep.
Several times Isbister heard him stumble as they came down, and
his
movements were slow and hesitating. "Come in with me," said
Isbister,
"and try some cigarettes and the blessed gift of alcohol.
If you take
alcohol?"
The stranger hesitated at the garden gate. He seemed no longer aware
of
his actions. "I don't drink," he said slowly, coming up the garden
path,
and after a moment's interval repeated absently, "No--I don't drink.
It
goes round. Spin, it goes--spin--"
He stumbled at the doorstep and entered the room with the bearing of
one
who sees nothing.
Then he sat down heavily in the easy chair, seemed almost to fall into
it.
He leant forward with his brows on his hands and became motionless.
Presently
he made a faint sound in his throat.
Isbister moved about the room with the nervousness of an
inexperienced
host, making little remarks that scarcely required answering.
He
crossed the room to his portfolio, placed it on the table and
noticed
the mantel clock.
"I don't know if you'd care to have supper with me," he said with
an
unlighted cigarette in his hand--his mind troubled with ideas of
a
furtive administration of chloral. "Only cold mutton, you know,
but
passing sweet. Welsh. And a tart, I believe." He repeated this
after
momentary silence.
The seated man made no answer. Isbister stopped, match in hand,
regarding
him.
The stillness lengthened. The match went out, the cigarette was put
down
unlit. The man was certainly very still. Isbister took up the
portfolio,
opened it, put it down, hesitated, seemed about to speak.
"Perhaps," he
whispered doubtfully. Presently he glanced at the door and back
to the
figure. Then he stole on tiptoe out of the room, glancing at
his
companion after each elaborate pace.
He closed the door noiselessly. The house door was standing open, and
he
went out beyond the porch, and stood where the monkshood rose at the
corner
of the garden bed. From this point he could see the stranger
through the open
window, still and dim, sitting head on hand. He had
not moved.
A number of children going along the road stopped and regarded the
artist
curiously. A boatman exchanged civilities with him. He felt that
possibly
his circumspect attitude and position looked peculiar and
unaccountable.
Smoking, perhaps, might seem more natural. He drew pipe and
pouch from
his pocket, filled the pipe slowly.
"I wonder," ... he said, with a scarcely perceptible loss of
complacency.
"At any rate one must give him a chance." He struck a match
in the virile
way, and proceeded to light his pipe.
He heard his landlady behind him, coming with his lamp lit from
the
kitchen. He turned, gesticulating with his pipe, and stopped her at
the
door of his sitting-room. He had some difficulty in explaining
the
situation in whispers, for she did not know he had a visitor.
She
retreated again with the lamp, still a little mystified to judge from
her
manner, and he resumed his hovering at the corner of the porch,
flushed
and less at his ease.
Long after he had smoked out his pipe, and when the bats were
abroad,
curiosity dominated his complex hesitations, and he stole back into
his
darkling sitting-room. He paused in the doorway. The stranger was
still
in the same attitude, dark against the window. Save for the singing
of
some sailors aboard one of the little slate-carrying ships in the
harbour
the evening was very still. Outside, the spikes of monkshood
and
delphinium stood erect and motionless against the shadow of the
hillside.
Something flashed into Isbister's mind; he started, and leaning
over the
table, listened. An unpleasant suspicion grew stronger;
became
conviction. Astonishment seized him and became--dread!
No sound of breathing came from the seated figure!
He crept slowly and noiselessly round the table, pausing twice to
listen.
At last he could lay his hand on the back of the armchair. He bent
down
until the two heads were ear to ear.
Then he bent still lower to look up at his visitor's face. He
started
violently and uttered an exclamation. The eyes were void spaces of
white.
He looked again and saw that they were open and with the pupils
rolled
under the lids. He was afraid. He took the man by the shoulder and
shook
him. "Are you asleep?" he said, with his voice jumping, and again,
"Are
you asleep?"
A conviction took possession of his mind that this man was dead. He
became
active and noisy, strode across the room, blundering against the
table as he
did so, and rang the bell.
"Please bring a light at once," he said in the passage. "There
is
something wrong with my friend."
He returned to the motionless seated figure, grasped the shoulder,
shook
it, shouted. The room was flooded with yellow glare as his
landlady
entered with the light. His face was white as he turned blinking
towards
her. "I must fetch a doctor," he said. "It is either death or a fit.
Is
there a doctor in the village? Where is a doctor to be found?"
CHAPTER II
THE TRANCE
The state of cataleptic rigour into which this man had fallen, lasted
for
an unprecedented length of time, and then he passed slowly to the
flaccid
state, to a lax attitude suggestive of profound repose. Then it was
his
eyes could be closed.
He was removed from the hotel to the Boscastle surgery, and from
the
surgery, after some weeks, to London. But he still resisted every
attempt
at reanimation. After a time, for reasons that will appear later,
these
attempts were discontinued. For a great space he lay in that
strange
condition, inert and still--neither dead nor living but, as it
were,
suspended, hanging midway between nothingness and existence. His was
a
darkness unbroken by a ray of thought or sensation, a
dreamless
inanition, a vast space of peace. The tumult of his mind had
swelled and
risen to an abrupt climax of silence. Where was the man? Where is
any man
when insensibility takes hold of him?
"It seems only yesterday," said Isbister. "I remember it all as though
it
happened yesterday--clearer, perhaps, than if it had happened
yesterday."
It was the Isbister of the last chapter, but he was no longer a young
man.
The hair that had been brown and a trifle in excess of the
fashionable
length, was iron grey and clipped close, and the face that
had been pink and
white was buff and ruddy. He had a pointed beard shot
with grey. He talked to
an elderly man who wore a summer suit of drill
(the summer of that year was
unusually hot). This was Warming, a London
solicitor and next of kin to
Graham, the man who had fallen into the
trance. And the two men stood side by
side in a room in a house in London
regarding his recumbent figure.
It was a yellow figure lying lax upon a water-bed and clad in a
flowing
shirt, a figure with a shrunken face and a stubby beard, lean limbs
and
lank nails, and about it was a case of thin glass. This glass seemed
to
mark off the sleeper from the reality of life about him, he was a
thing
apart, a strange, isolated abnormality. The two men stood close to
the
glass, peering in.
"The thing gave me a shock," said Isbister. "I feel a queer sort
of
surprise even now when I think of his white eyes. They were white,
you
know, rolled up. Coming here again brings it all back to me."
"Have you never seen him since that time?" asked Warming.
"Often wanted to come," said Isbister; "but business nowadays is
too
serious a thing for much holiday keeping. I've been in America most
of
the time."
"If I remember rightly," said Warming, "you were an artist?"
"Was. And then I became a married man. I saw it was all up with black
and
white, very soon--at least for a mediocrity, and I jumped on to
process.
Those posters on the Cliffs at Dover are by my people."
"Good posters," admitted the solicitor, "though I was sorry to see
them
there."
"Last as long as the cliffs, if necessary," exclaimed Isbister
with
satisfaction. "The world changes. When he fell asleep, twenty years
ago,
I was down at Boscastle with a box of water-colours and a
noble,
old-fashioned ambition. I didn't expect that some day my pigments
would
glorify the whole blessed coast of England, from Land's End round
again
to the Lizard. Luck comes to a man very often when he's not
looking."
Warming seemed to doubt the quality of the luck. "I just missed
seeing
you, if I recollect aright."
"You came back by the trap that took me to Camelford railway station.
It
was close on the Jubilee, Victoria's Jubilee, because I remember
the
seats and flags in Westminster, and the row with the cabman at
Chelsea."
"The Diamond Jubilee, it was," said Warming; "the second one."
"Ah, yes! At the proper Jubilee--the Fifty Year affair--I was down
at
Wookey--a boy. I missed all that.... What a fuss we had with him!
My
landlady wouldn't take him in, wouldn't let him stay--he looked so
queer
when he was rigid. We had to carry him in a chair up to the hotel.
And
the Boscastle doctor--it wasn't the present chap, but the G.P.
before
him--was at him until nearly two, with me and the landlord holding
lights
and so forth."
"Do you mean--he was stiff and hard?"
"Stiff!--wherever you bent him he stuck. You might have stood him on
his
head and he'd have stopped. I never saw such stiffness. Of
course
this"--he indicated the prostrate figure by a movement of his
head--"is
quite different. And the little doctor--what was his name?"
"Smithers?"
"Smithers it was--was quite wrong in trying to fetch him round too
soon,
according to all accounts. The things he did! Even now it makes me
feel
all--ugh! Mustard, snuff, pricking. And one of those beastly
little
things, not dynamos--"
"Coils."
"Yes. You could see his muscles throb and jump, and he twisted
about.
There were just two flaring yellow candles, and all the shadows
were
shivering, and the little doctor nervous and putting on side,
and
_him_--stark and squirming in the most unnatural ways. Well, it
made
me dream."
Pause.
"It's a strange state," said Warming.
"It's a sort of complete absence," said Isbister. "Here's the body,
empty.
Not dead a bit, and yet not alive. It's like a seat vacant and
marked
'engaged.' No feeling, no digestion, no beating of the heart--not
a flutter.
_That_ doesn't make me feel as if there was a man present. In
a sense it's
more dead than death, for these doctors tell me that even
the hair has
stopped growing. Now with the proper dead, the hair will go
on growing--"
"I know," said Warming, with a flash of pain in his expression.
They peered through the glass again. Graham was indeed in a strange
state,
in the flaccid phase of a trance, but a trance unprecedented in
medical
history. Trances had lasted for as much as a year before--but at
the end of
that time it had ever been a waking or a death; sometimes
first one and then
the other. Isbister noted the marks the physicians
had made in injecting
nourishment, for that had been resorted to to
postpone collapse; he pointed
them out to Warming, who had been trying
not to see them.
"And while he has been lying here," said Isbister, with the zest of a
life
freely spent, "I have changed my plans in life; married, raised a
family, my
eldest lad--I hadn't begun to think of sons then--is an
American citizen, and
looking forward to leaving Harvard. There's a touch
of grey in my hair. And
this man, not a day older nor wiser (practically)
than I was in my downy
days. It's curious to think of."
Warming turned. "And I have grown old too. I played cricket with him
when
I was still only a boy. And he looks a young man still. Yellow
perhaps.
But that _is_ a young man nevertheless."
"And there's been the War," said Isbister.
"From beginning to end."
"And these Martians."
"I've understood," said Isbister after a pause, "that he had some
moderate
property of his own?"
"That is so," said Warming. He coughed primly. "As it happens--I
have
charge of it."
"Ah!" Isbister thought, hesitated and spoke: "No doubt--his keep here
is
not expensive--no doubt it will have improved--accumulated?"
"It has. He will wake up very much better off--if he wakes--than when
he
slept."
"As a business man," said Isbister, "that thought has naturally been in
my
mind. I have, indeed, sometimes thought that, speaking commercially,
of
course, this sleep may be a very good thing for him. That he knows
what he is
about, so to speak, in being insensible so long. If he had
lived straight
on--"
"I doubt if he would have premeditated as much," said Warming. "He was
not
a far-sighted man. In fact--"
"Yes?"
"We differed on that point. I stood to him somewhat in the relation of
a
guardian. You have probably seen enough of affairs to recognise
that
occasionally a certain friction--. But even if that was the case,
there
is a doubt whether he will ever wake. This sleep exhausts slowly, but
it
exhausts. Apparently he is sliding slowly, very slowly and
tediously,
down a long slope, if you can understand me?"
"It will be a pity to lose his surprise. There's been a lot of
change
these twenty years. It's Rip Van Winkle come real."
"There has been a lot of change certainly," said Warming. "And,
among
other changes, I have changed. I am an old man."
Isbister hesitated, and then feigned a belated surprise. "I shouldn't
have
thought it."
"I was forty-three when his bankers--you remember you wired to
his
bankers--sent on to me."
"I got their address from the cheque book in his pocket," said Isbister.
"Well, the addition is not difficult," said Warming.
There was another pause, and then Isbister gave way to an
unavoidable
curiosity. "He may go on for years yet," he said, and had a
moment of
hesitation. "We have to consider that. His affairs, you know, may
fall
some day into the hands of--someone else, you know."
"That, if you will believe me, Mr. Isbister, is one of the problems
most
constantly before my mind. We happen to be--as a matter of fact,
there
are no very trustworthy connexions of ours. It is a grotesque
and
unprecedented position."
"Rather," said Isbister.
"It seems to me it's a case of some public body, some practically
undying
guardian. If he really is going on living--as the doctors, some
of them,
think. As a matter of fact, I have gone to one or two public men
about it.
But, so far, nothing has been done."
"It wouldn't be a bad idea to hand him over to some public
body--the
British Museum Trustees, or the Royal College of Physicians. Sounds
a bit
odd, of course, but the whole situation is odd."
"The difficulty is to induce them to take him."
"Red tape, I suppose?"
"Partly."
Pause. "It's a curious business, certainly," said Isbister. "And
compound
interest has a way of mounting up."
"It has," said Warming. "And now the gold supplies are running short
there
is a tendency towards ... appreciation."
"I've felt that," said Isbister with a grimace. "But it makes it
better
for _him_."
"_If_ he wakes."
"If he wakes," echoed Isbister. "Do you notice the pinched-in look of
his
nose, and the way in which his eyelids sink?"
Warming looked and thought for a space. "I doubt if he will wake," he
said
at last.
"I never properly understood," said Isbister, "what it was brought
this
on. He told me something about overstudy. I've often been curious."
"He was a man of considerable gifts, but spasmodic, emotional. He
had
grave domestic troubles, divorced his wife, in fact, and it was
as a relief
from that, I think, that he took up politics of the
rabid sort. He was a
fanatical Radical--a Socialist--or typical
Liberal, as they used to call
themselves, of the advanced school.
Energetic--flighty--undisciplined.
Overwork upon a controversy did this
for him. I remember the pamphlet he
wrote--a curious production. Wild,
whirling stuff. There were one or two
prophecies. Some of them are
already exploded, some of them are established
facts. But for the most
part to read such a thesis is to realise how full the
world is of
unanticipated things. He will have much to learn, much to
unlearn, when
he wakes. If ever a waking comes."
"I'd give anything to be there," said Isbister, "just to hear what
he
would say to it all."
"So would I," said Warming. "Aye! so would I," with an old man's
sudden
turn to self pity. "But I shall never see him wake."
He stood looking thoughtfully at the waxen figure. "He will never
awake,"
he said at last. He sighed. "He will never awake again."
CHAPTER III
THE AWAKENING
But Warming was wrong in that. An awakening came.
What a wonderfully complex thing! this simple seeming unity--the self!
Who
can trace its reintegration as morning after morning we awaken, the
flux and
confluence of its countless factors interweaving, rebuilding,
the dim first
stirrings of the soul, the growth and synthesis of the
unconscious to the
subconscious, the subconscious to dawning
consciousness, until at last we
recognise ourselves again. And as it
happens to most of us after the night's
sleep, so it was with Graham at
the end of his vast slumber. A dim cloud of
sensation taking shape, a
cloudy dreariness, and he found himself vaguely
somewhere, recumbent,
faint, but alive.
The pilgrimage towards a personal being seemed to traverse vast gulfs,
to
occupy epochs. Gigantic dreams that were terrible realities at the
time,
left vague perplexing memories, strange creatures, strange scenery, as
if
from another planet. There was a distinct impression, too, of a
momentous
conversation, of a name--he could not tell what name--that
was
subsequently to recur, of some queer long-forgotten sensation of vein
and
muscle, of a feeling of vast hopeless effort, the effort of a man
near
drowning in darkness. Then came a panorama of dazzling unstable
confluent
scenes....
Graham became aware that his eyes were open and regarding some
unfamiliar
thing.
It was something white, the edge of something, a frame of wood. He
moved
his head slightly, following the contour of this shape. It went
up
beyond the top of his eyes. He tried to think where he might be. Did
it
matter, seeing he was so wretched? The colour of his thoughts was a
dark
depression. He felt the featureless misery of one who wakes towards
the
hour of dawn. He had an uncertain sense of whispers and
footsteps
hastily receding.
The movement of his head involved a perception of extreme
physical
weakness. He supposed he was in bed in the hotel at the place in
the
valley--but he could not recall that white edge. He must have slept.
He
remembered now that he had wanted to sleep. He recalled the cliff
and
Waterfall again, and then recollected something about talking to
a
passer-by....
How long had he slept? What was that sound of pattering feet? And
that
rise and fall, like the murmur of breakers on pebbles? He put out
a
languid hand to reach his watch from the chair whereon it was his
habit
to place it, and touched some smooth hard surface like glass. This was
so
unexpected that it startled him extremely. Quite suddenly he rolled
over,
stared for a moment, and struggled into a sitting position. The
effort
was unexpectedly difficult, and it left him giddy and weak--and
amazed.
He rubbed his eyes. The riddle of his surroundings was confusing but
his
mind was quite clear--evidently his sleep had benefited him. He was
not
in a bed at all as he understood the word, but lying naked on a very
soft
and yielding mattress, in a trough of dark glass. The mattress
was
partly transparent, a fact he observed with a sense of insecurity,
and
below it was a mirror reflecting him greyly. About his arm--and he
saw
with a shock that his skin was strangely dry and yellow--was bound
a
curious apparatus of rubber, bound so cunningly that it seemed to
pass
into his skin above and below. And this bed was placed in a case
of
greenish coloured glass (as it seemed to him), a bar in the
white
framework of which had first arrested his attention. In the corner of
the
case was a stand of glittering and delicately made apparatus, for
the
most part quite strange appliances, though a maximum and
minimum
thermometer was recognisable.
The slightly greenish tint of the glass-like substance which
surrounded
him on every hand obscured what lay behind, but he perceived it
was a
vast apartment of splendid appearance, and with a very large and
simple
white archway facing him. Close to the walls of the cage were articles
of
furniture, a table covered with a silvery cloth, silvery like the side
of
a fish, a couple of graceful chairs, and on the table a number of
dishes
with substances piled on them, a bottle and two glasses. He realised
that
he was intensely hungry.
He could see no one, and after a period of hesitation scrambled off
the
translucent mattress and tried to stand on the clean white floor of
his
little apartment. He had miscalculated his strength, however,
and
staggered and put his hand against the glass like pane before him
to
steady himself. For a moment it resisted his hand, bending outward like
a
distended bladder, then it broke with a slight report and
vanished--a
pricked bubble. He reeled out into the general space of the hall,
greatly
astonished. He caught at the table to save himself, knocking one of
the
glasses to the floor--it rang but did not break--and sat down in one
of
the armchairs.
When he had a little recovered he filled the remaining glass from
the
bottle and drank--a colourless liquid it was, but not water, with
a
pleasing faint aroma and taste and a quality of immediate support
and
stimulus. He put down the vessel and looked about him.
The apartment lost none of its size and magnificence now that the
greenish
transparency that had intervened was removed. The archway he saw
led to a
flight of steps, going downward without the intermediation of a
door, to a
spacious transverse passage. This passage ran between polished
pillars of
some white-veined substance of deep ultramarine, and along it
came the sound
of human movements, and voices and a deep undeviating
droning note. He sat,
now fully awake, listening alertly, forgetting the
viands in his
attention.
Then with a shock he remembered that he was naked, and casting about
him
for covering, saw a long black robe thrown on one of the chairs
beside
him. This he wrapped about him and sat down again, trembling.
His mind was still a surging perplexity. Clearly he had slept, and
had
been removed in his sleep. But where? And who were those people,
the
distant crowd beyond the deep blue pillars? Boscastle? He poured out
and
partially drank another glass of the colourless fluid.
What was this place?--this place that to his senses seemed
subtly
quivering like a thing alive? He looked about him at the clean
and
beautiful form of the apartment, unstained by ornament, and saw that
the
roof was broken in one place by a circular shaft full of light, and,
as
he looked, a steady, sweeping shadow blotted it out and passed, and
came
again and passed. "Beat, beat," that sweeping shadow had a note of
its
own in the subdued tumult that filled the air.
He would have called out, but only a little sound came into his
throat.
Then he stood up, and, with the uncertain steps of a drunkard, made
his
way towards the archway. He staggered down the steps, tripped on
the
corner of the black cloak he had wrapped about himself, and saved
himself
by catching at one of the blue pillars.
The passage ran down a cool vista of blue and purple and ended remotely
in
a railed space like a balcony brightly lit and projecting into a space
of
haze, a space like the interior of some gigantic building. Beyond and
remote
were vast and vague architectural forms. The tumult of voices rose
now loud
and clear, and on the balcony and with their backs to him,
gesticulating and
apparently in animated conversation, were three
figures, richly dressed in
loose and easy garments of bright soft
colourings. The noise of a great
multitude of people poured up over the
balcony, and once it seemed the top of
a banner passed, and once some
brightly coloured object, a pale blue cap or
garment thrown up into the
air perhaps, flashed athwart the space and fell.
The shouts sounded like
English, there was a reiteration of "Wake!" He heard
some indistinct
shrill cry, and abruptly these three men began laughing.
"Ha, ha, ha!" laughed one--a red-haired man in a short purple robe.
"When
the Sleeper wakes--_When_!"
He turned his eyes full of merriment along the passage. His face
changed,
the whole man changed, became rigid. The other two turned swiftly at
his
exclamation and stood motionless. Their faces assumed an expression
of
consternation, an expression that deepened into awe.
Suddenly Graham's knees bent beneath him, his arm against the
pillar
collapsed limply, he staggered forward and fell upon his face.
CHAPTER IV
THE SOUND OF A TUMULT
Graham's last impression before he fainted was of the ringing of
bells.
He learnt afterwards that he was insensible, hanging between life
and
death, for the better part of an hour. When he recovered his senses,
he
was back on his translucent couch, and there was a stirring warmth
at
heart and throat. The dark apparatus, he perceived, had been removed
from
his arm, which was bandaged. The white framework was still about him,
but
the greenish transparent substance that had filled it was
altogether
gone. A man in a deep violet robe, one of those who had been on
the
balcony, was looking keenly into his face.
Remote but insistent was a clamour of bells and confused sounds,
that
suggested to his mind the picture of a great number of
people
shouting together. Something seemed to fall across this tumult,
a
door suddenly closed.
Graham moved his head. "What does this all mean?" he said slowly.
"Where
am I?"
He saw the red-haired man who had been first to discover him. A
voice
seemed to be asking what he had said, and was abruptly stilled.
The man in violet answered in a soft voice, speaking English with
a
slightly foreign accent, or so at least it seemed to the Sleeper's
ears.
"You are quite safe. You were brought hither from where you fell
asleep.
It is quite safe. You have been here some time--sleeping. In a
trance."
He said, something further that Graham could not hear, and a little
phial
was handed across to him. Graham felt a cooling spray, a fragrant
mist
played over his forehead for a moment, and his sense of
refreshment
increased. He closed his eyes in satisfaction.
"Better?" asked the man in violet, as Graham's eyes reopened. He was
a
pleasant-faced man of thirty, perhaps, with a pointed flaxen beard, and
a
clasp of gold at the neck of his violet robe.
"Yes," said Graham.
"You have been asleep some time. In a cataleptic trance. You have
heard?
Catalepsy? It may seem strange to you at first, but I can assure
you
everything is well."
Graham did not answer, but these words served their reassuring
purpose.
His eyes went from face to face of the three people about him. They
were
regarding him strangely. He knew he ought to be somewhere in
Cornwall,
but he could not square these things with that impression.
A matter that had been in his mind during his last waking moments
at
Boscastle recurred, a thing resolved upon and somehow neglected.
He
cleared his throat.
"Have you wired my cousin?" he asked. "E. Warming, 27, Chancery Lane?"
They were all assiduous to hear. But he had to repeat it. "What an
odd
_blurr_ in his accent!" whispered the red-haired man. "Wire, sir?"
said
the young man with the flaxen beard, evidently puzzled.
"He means send an electric telegram," volunteered the third,
a
pleasant-faced youth of nineteen or twenty. The flaxen-bearded man gave
a
cry of comprehension. "How stupid of me! You may be sure everything
shall
be done, sir," he said to Graham. "I am afraid it would be
difficult
to--_wire_ to your cousin. He is not in London now. But don't
trouble
about arrangements yet; you have been asleep a very long time and
the
important thing is to get over that, sir." (Graham concluded the word
was
sir, but this man pronounced it "_Sire_.")
"Oh!" said Graham, and became quiet.
It was all very puzzling, but apparently these people in unfamiliar
dress
knew what they were about. Yet they were odd and the room was odd.
It
seemed he was in some newly established place. He had a sudden flash
of
suspicion! Surely this wasn't some hall of public exhibition! If it
was
he would give Warming a piece of his mind. But it scarcely had
that
character. And in a place of public exhibition he would not
have
discovered himself naked.
Then suddenly, quite abruptly, he realised what had happened. There was
no
perceptible interval of suspicion, no dawn to his knowledge. Abruptly
he knew
that his trance had lasted for a vast interval; as if by some
processes of
thought-reading he interpreted the awe in the faces that
peered into his. He
looked at them strangely, full of intense emotion. It
seemed they read his
eyes. He framed his lips to speak and could not. A
queer impulse to hide his
knowledge came into his mind almost at the
moment of his discovery. He looked
at his bare feet, regarding them
silently. His impulse to speak passed. He
was trembling exceedingly.
They gave him some pink fluid with a greenish fluorescence and a
meaty
taste, and the assurance of returning strength grew.
"That--that makes me feel better," he said hoarsely, and there
were
murmurs of respectful approval. He knew now quite clearly. He made
to
speak again, and again he could not.
He pressed his throat and tried a third time. "How long?" he asked in
a
level voice. "How long have I been asleep?"
"Some considerable time," said the flaxen-bearded man, glancing quickly
at
the others.
"How long?"
"A very long time."
"Yes--yes," said Graham, suddenly testy. "But I want--Is it--it
is--some
years? Many years? There was something--I forget what. I
feel--confused.
But you--" He sobbed. "You need not fence with me. How
long--?"
He stopped, breathing irregularly. He squeezed his eyes with his
knuckles
and sat waiting for an answer.
They spoke in undertones.
"Five or six?" he asked faintly. "More?"
"Very much more than that."
"More!"
"More."
He looked at them and it seemed as though imps were twitching the
muscles
of his face. He looked his question.
"Many years," said the man with the red beard.
Graham struggled into a sitting position. He wiped a rheumy tear from
his
face with a lean hand. "Many years!" he repeated. He shut his eyes
tight,
opened them, and sat looking about him from one unfamiliar thing
to
another.
"How many years?" he asked.
"You must be prepared to be surprised."
"Well?"
"More than a gross of years."
He was irritated at the strange word. "More than a _what_?"
Two of them spoke together. Some quick remarks that were made
about
"decimal" he did not catch.
"How long did you say?" asked Graham. "How long? Don't look like
that.
Tell me."
Among the remarks in an undertone, his ear caught six words: "More than
a
couple of centuries."
"_What_?" he cried, turning on the youth who he thought had spoken.
"Who
says--? What was that? A couple of _centuries_!"
"Yes," said the man with the red beard. "Two hundred years."
Graham repeated the words. He had been prepared to hear of a vast
repose,
and yet these concrete centuries defeated him.
"Two hundred years," he said again, with the figure of a great
gulf
opening very slowly in his mind; and then, "Oh, but--!"
They said nothing.
"You--did you say--?"
"Two hundred years. Two centuries of years," said the man with the
red
beard.
There was a pause. Graham looked at their faces and saw that what he
had
heard was indeed true.
"But it can't be," he said querulously. "I am dreaming.
Trances--trances
don't last. That is not right--this is a joke you have
played upon me!
Tell me--some days ago, perhaps, I was walking along the
coast of
Cornwall--?"
His voice failed him.
The man with the flaxen beard hesitated. "I'm not very strong in
history,
sir," he said weakly, and glanced at the others.
"That was it, sir," said the youngster. "Boscastle, in the old Duchy
of
Cornwall--it's in the south-west country beyond the dairy meadows.
There
is a house there still. I have been there."
"Boscastle!" Graham turned his eyes to the youngster. "That
was
it--Boscastle. Little Boscastle. I fell asleep--somewhere there. I
don't
exactly remember. I don't exactly remember."
He pressed his brows and whispered, "More than _two hundred years_!"
He began to speak quickly with a twitching face, but his heart was
cold
within him. "But if it _is_ two hundred years, every soul I know,
every human
being that ever I saw or spoke to before I went to sleep,
must be dead."
They did not answer him.
"The Queen and the Royal Family, her Ministers, Church and State. High
and
low, rich and poor, one with another ... Is there England still?"
"That's a comfort! Is there London?"
"This _is_ London, eh? And you are my
assistant-custodian;
assistant-custodian. And these--? Eh?
Assistant-custodians too!"
He sat with a gaunt stare on his face. "But why am I here? No! Don't
talk.
Be quiet. Let me--"
He sat silent, rubbed his eyes, and, uncovering them, found another
little
glass of pinkish fluid held towards him. He took the dose.
Directly he had
taken it he began to weep naturally and refreshingly.
Presently he looked at their faces, suddenly laughed through his tears,
a
little foolishly. "But--two--hun--dred--years!" he said. He
grimaced
hysterically and covered his face again.
After a space he grew calm. He sat up, his hands hanging over his knees
in
almost precisely the same attitude in which Isbister had found him on
the
cliff at Pentargen. His attention was attracted by a thick
domineering voice,
the footsteps of an advancing personage. "What are you
doing? Why was I not
warned? Surely you could tell? Someone will suffer
for this. The man must be
kept quiet. Are the doorways closed? All the
doorways? He must be kept
perfectly quiet. He must not be told. Has he
been told anything?"
The man with the fair beard made some inaudible remark, and Graham
looking
over his shoulder saw approaching a short, fat, and thickset
beardless man,
with aquiline nose and heavy neck and chin. Very thick
black and slightly
sloping eyebrows that almost met over his nose and
overhung deep grey eyes,
gave his face an oddly formidable expression. He
scowled momentarily at
Graham and then his regard returned to the man
with the flaxen beard. "These
others," he said in a voice of extreme
irritation. "You had better go."
"Go?" said the red-bearded man.
"Certainly--go now. But see the doorways are closed as you go."
The two men addressed turned obediently, after one reluctant glance
at
Graham, and instead of going through the archway as he expected,
walked
straight to the dead wall of the apartment opposite the archway. A
long
strip of this apparently solid wall rolled up with a snap, hung over
the
two retreating men and fell again, and immediately Graham was alone
with
the newcomer and the purple-robed man with the flaxen beard.
For a space the thickset man took not the slightest notice of Graham,
but
proceeded to interrogate the other--obviously his subordinate---upon
the
treatment of their charge. He spoke clearly, but in phrases
only
partially intelligible to Graham. The awakening seemed not only a
matter
of surprise but of consternation and annoyance to him. He was
evidently
profoundly excited.
"You must not confuse his mind by telling him things," he repeated
again
and again. "You must not confuse his mind."
His questions answered, he turned quickly and eyed the awakened
sleeper
with an ambiguous expression.
"Feel queer?" he asked.
"Very."
"The world, what you see of it, seems strange to you?"
"I suppose I have to live in it, strange as it seems."
"I suppose so, now."
"In the first place, hadn't I better have some clothes?"
"They--" said the thickset man and stopped, and the flaxen-bearded man
met
his eye and went away. "You will very speedily have clothes," said
the
thickset man.
"Is it true indeed, that I have been asleep two hundred--?" asked Graham.
"They have told you that, have they? Two hundred and three, as a
matter of
fact."
Graham accepted the indisputable now with raised eyebrows and
depressed
mouth. He sat silent for a moment, and then asked a question, "Is
there a
mill or dynamo near here?" He did not wait for an answer. "Things
have
changed tremendously, I suppose?" he said.
"What is that shouting?" he asked abruptly.
"Nothing," said the thickset man impatiently. "It's people.
You'll
understand better later--perhaps. As you say, things have changed."
He
spoke shortly, his brows were knit, and he glanced about him like a
man
trying to decide in an emergency. "We must get you clothes and so
forth,
at any rate. Better wait here until they can be procured. No one
will
come near you. You want shaving."
Graham rubbed his chin.
The man with the flaxen beard came back towards them, turned
suddenly,
listened for a moment, lifted his eyebrows at the older man, and
hurried
off through the archway towards the balcony. The tumult of shouting
grew
louder, and the thickset man turned and listened also. He cursed
suddenly
under his breath, and turned his eyes upon Graham with an
unfriendly
expression. It was a surge of many voices, rising and falling,
shouting
and screaming, and once came a sound like blows and sharp cries, and
then
a snapping like the crackling of dry sticks. Graham strained his ears
to
draw some single thread of sound from the woven tumult.
Then he perceived, repeated again and again, a certain formula. For a
time
he doubted his ears. But surely these were the words: "Show us the
Sleeper!
Show us the Sleeper!"
The thickset man rushed suddenly to the archway.
"Wild!" he cried. "How do they know? Do they know? Or is it guessing?"
There was perhaps an answer.
"I can't come," said the thickset man; "I have _him_ to see to. But
shout
from the balcony."
There was an inaudible reply.
"Say he is not awake. Anything! I leave it to you."
He came hurrying back to Graham. "You must have clothes at once," he
said.
"You cannot stop here--and it will be impossible to--"
He rushed away, Graham shouting unanswered questions after him. In
a
moment he was back.
"I can't tell you what is happening. It is too complex to explain. In
a
moment you shall have your clothes made. Yes--in a moment. And then I
can
take you away from here. You will find out our troubles soon enough."
"But those voices. They were shouting--?"
"Something about the Sleeper--that's you. They have some twisted idea.
I
don't know what it is. I know nothing."
A shrill bell jetted acutely across the indistinct mingling of
remote
noises, and this brusque person sprang to a little group of appliances
in
the corner of the room. He listened for a moment, regarding a ball
of
crystal, nodded, and said a few indistinct words; then he walked to
the
wall through which the two men had vanished. It rolled up again like
a
curtain, and he stood waiting.
Graham lifted his arm and was astonished to find what strength
the
restoratives had given him. He thrust one leg over the side of the
couch
and then the other. His head no longer swam. He could scarcely credit
his
rapid recovery. He sat feeling his limbs.
The man with the flaxen beard re-entered from the archway, and as he
did
so the cage of a lift came sliding down in front of the thickset man,
and
a lean, grey-bearded man, carrying a roll, and wearing a
tightly-fitting
costume of dark green, appeared therein.
"This is the tailor," said the thickset man with an introductory
gesture.
"It will never do for you to wear that black. I cannot understand
how it
got here. But I shall. I shall. You will be as rapid as possible?"
he
said to the tailor.
The man in green bowed, and, advancing, seated himself by Graham on
the
bed. His manner was calm, but his eyes were full of curiosity. "You
will
find the fashions altered, Sire," he said. He glanced from under
his
brows at the thickset man.
He opened the roller with a quick movement, and a confusion of
brilliant
fabrics poured out over his knees. "You lived, Sire, in a
period
essentially cylindrical--the Victorian. With a tendency to the
hemisphere
in hats. Circular curves always. Now--" He flicked out a little
appliance
the size and appearance of a keyless watch, whirled the knob,
and
behold--a little figure in white appeared kinetoscope fashion on
the
dial, walking and turning. The tailor caught up a pattern of bluish
white
satin. "That is my conception of your immediate treatment," he
said.
The thickset man came and stood by the shoulder of Graham.
"We have very little time," he said.
"Trust me," said the tailor. "My machine follows. What do you
think of
this?"
"What is that?" asked the man from the nineteenth century.
"In your days they showed you a fashion-plate," said the tailor, "but
this
is our modern development. See here." The little figure repeated
its
evolutions, but in a different costume. "Or this," and with a
click
another small figure in a more voluminous type of robe marched on to
the
dial. The tailor was very quick in his movements, and glanced
twice
towards the lift as he did these things.
It rumbled again, and a crop-haired anemic lad with features of
the
Chinese type, clad in coarse pale blue canvas, appeared together with
a
complicated machine, which he pushed noiselessly on little castors
into
the room. Incontinently the little kinetoscope was dropped, Graham
was
invited to stand in front of the machine and the tailor muttered
some
instructions to the crop-haired lad, who answered in guttural tones
and
with words Graham did not recognise. The boy then went to conduct
an
incomprehensible monologue in the corner, and the tailor pulled out
a
number of slotted arms terminating in little discs, pulling them
out
until the discs were flat against the body of Graham, one at
each
shoulder blade, one at the elbows, one at the neck and so forth, so
that
at last there were, perhaps, two score of them upon his body and
limbs.
At the same time, some other person entered the room by the lift,
behind
Graham. The tailor set moving a mechanism that initiated a
faint-sounding
rhythmic movement of parts in the machine, and in another
moment he was
knocking up the levers and Graham was released. The tailor
replaced his
cloak of black, and the man with the flaxen beard proffered him
a little
glass of some refreshing fluid. Graham saw over the rim of the glass
a
pale-faced young man regarding him with a singular fixity.
The thickset man had been pacing the room fretfully, and now turned
and
went through the archway towards the balcony, from which the noise of
a
distant crowd still came in gusts and cadences. The crop-headed
lad
handed the tailor a roll of the bluish satin and the two began
fixing
this in the mechanism in a manner reminiscent of a roll of paper in
a
nineteenth century printing machine. Then they ran the entire thing
on
its easy, noiseless bearings across the room to a remote corner where
a
twisted cable looped rather gracefully from the wall. They made
some
connexion and the machine became energetic and swift.
"What is that doing?" asked Graham, pointing with the empty glass to
the
busy figures and trying to ignore the scrutiny of the new comer.
"Is
that--some sort of force--laid on?"
"Yes," said the man with the flaxen beard.
"Who is _that_?" He indicated the archway behind him.
The man in purple stroked his little beard, hesitated, and answered in
an
undertone, "He is Howard, your chief guardian. You see, Sire--it's
a little
difficult to explain. The Council appoints a guardian and
assistants. This
hall has under certain restrictions been public. In
order that people might
satisfy themselves. We have barred the
doorways for the first time. But I
think--if you don't mind, I will
leave him to explain."
"Odd!" said Graham. "Guardian? Council?" Then turning his back on the
new
comer, he asked in an undertone, "Why is this man _glaring_ at me? Is
he a
mesmerist?"
"Mesmerist! He is a capillotomist."
"Capillotomist!"
"Yes--one of the chief. His yearly fee is sixdoz lions."
It sounded sheer nonsense. Graham snatched at the last phrase with
an
unsteady mind. "Sixdoz lions?" he said.
"Didn't you have lions? I suppose not. You had the old pounds? They
are
our monetary units."
"But what was that you said--sixdoz?"
"Yes. Six dozen, Sire. Of course things, even these little things,
have
altered. You lived in the days of the decimal system, the
Arab
system--tens, and little hundreds and thousands. We have eleven
numerals
now. We have single figures for both ten and eleven, two figures for
a
dozen, and a dozen dozen makes a gross, a great hundred, you know,
a
dozen gross a dozand, and a dozand dozand a myriad. Very simple?"
"I suppose so," said Graham. "But about this cap--what was it?"
The man with the flaxen beard glanced over his shoulder.
"Here are your clothes!" he said. Graham turned round sharply and saw
the
tailor standing at his elbow smiling, and holding some palpably
new
garments over his arm. The crop-headed boy, by means of one ringer,
was
impelling the complicated machine towards the lift by which he
had
arrived. Graham stared at the completed suit. "You don't mean to
say--!"
"Just made," said the tailor. He dropped the garments at the feet
of
Graham, walked to the bed, on which Graham had so recently been
lying,
flung out the translucent mattress, and turned up the looking-glass.
As
he did so a furious bell summoned the thickset man to the corner.
The
man with the flaxen beard rushed across to him and then hurried out
by
the archway.
The tailor was assisting Graham into a dark purple combination
garment,
stockings, vest, and pants in one, as the thickset man came back
from
the corner to meet the man with the flaxen beard returning from
the
balcony. They began speaking quickly in an undertone, their bearing
had
an unmistakable quality of anxiety. Over the purple under-garment
came
a complex garment of bluish white, and Graham, was clothed in
the
fashion once more and saw himself, sallow-faced, unshaven and
shaggy
still, but at least naked no longer, and in some
indefinable
unprecedented way graceful.
"I must shave," he said regarding himself in the glass.
"In a moment," said Howard.
The persistent stare ceased. The young man closed his eyes, reopened
them,
and with a lean hand extended, advanced on Graham. Then he stopped,
with his
hand slowly gesticulating, and looked about him.
"A seat," said Howard impatiently, and in a moment the flaxen-bearded
man
had a chair behind Graham. "Sit down, please," said Howard.
Graham hesitated, and in the other hand of the wild-eyed man he saw
the
glint of steel.
"Don't you understand, Sire?" cried the flaxen-bearded man with
hurried
politeness. "He is going to cut your hair."
"Oh!" cried Graham enlightened. "But you called him--"
"A capillotomist--precisely! He is one of the finest artists in
the
world."
Graham sat down abruptly. The flaxen-bearded man disappeared.
The
capillotomist came forward, examined Graham's ears and surveyed him,
felt
the back of his head, and would have sat down again to regard him but
for
Howard's audible impatience. Forthwith with rapid movements and
a
succession of deftly handled implements he shaved Graham's chin,
clipped
his moustache, and cut and arranged his hair. All this he did without
a
word, with something of the rapt air of a poet inspired. And as soon
as
he had finished Graham was handed a pair of shoes.
Suddenly a loud voice shouted--it seemed from a piece of machinery in
the
corner--"At once--at once. The people know all over the city. Work
is
being stopped. Work is being stopped. Wait for nothing, but come."
This shout appeared to perturb Howard exceedingly. By his gestures
it
seemed to Graham that he hesitated between two directions. Abruptly
he
went towards the corner where the apparatus stood about the
little
crystal ball. As he did so the undertone of tumultuous shouting from
the
archway that had continued during all these occurrences rose to a
mighty
sound, roared as if it were sweeping past, and fell again as if
receding
swiftly. It drew Graham after it with an irresistible attraction.
He
glanced at the thickset man, and then obeyed his impulse. In two
strides
he was down the steps and in the passage, and in a score he was out
upon
the balcony upon which the three men had been standing.
CHAPTER V
THE MOVING WAYS
He went to the railings of the balcony and stared upward. An
exclamation
of surprise at his appearance, and the movements of a number of
people
came from the great area below.
His first impression was of overwhelming architecture. The place
into
which he looked was an aisle of Titanic buildings, curving spaciously
in
either direction. Overhead mighty cantilevers sprang together across
the
huge width of the place, and a tracery of translucent material shut
out
the sky. Gigantic globes of cool white light shamed the pale
sunbeams
that filtered down through the girders and wires. Here and there
a
gossamer suspension bridge dotted with foot passengers flung across
the
chasm and the air was webbed with slender cables. A cliff of
edifice
hung above him, he perceived as he glanced upward, and the
opposite
façade was grey and dim and broken by great archings,
circular
perforations, balconies, buttresses, turret projections, myriads of
vast
windows, and an intricate scheme of architectural relief. Athwart
these
ran inscriptions horizontally and obliquely in an unfamiliar
lettering.
Here and there close to the roof cables of a peculiar stoutness
were
fastened, and drooped in a steep curve to circular openings on
the
opposite side of the space, and even as Graham noted these a remote
and
tiny figure of a man clad in pale blue arrested his attention.
This
little figure was far overhead across the space beside the
higher
fastening of one of these festoons, hanging forward from a little
ledge
of masonry and handling some well-nigh invisible strings dependent
from
the line. Then suddenly, with a swoop that sent Graham's heart into
his
mouth, this man had rushed down the curve and vanished through a
round
opening on the hither side of the way. Graham had been looking up as
he
came out upon the balcony, and the things he saw above and opposed
to
him had at first seized his attention to the exclusion of anything
else.
Then suddenly he discovered the roadway! It was not a roadway at all,
as
Graham understood such things, for in the nineteenth century the
only
roads and streets were beaten tracks of motionless earth,
jostling
rivulets of vehicles between narrow footways. But this roadway was
three
hundred feet across, and it moved; it moved, all save the middle,
the
lowest part. For a moment, the motion dazzled his mind. Then
he
understood. Under the balcony this extraordinary roadway ran swiftly
to
Graham's right, an endless flow rushing along as fast as a
nineteenth
century express train, an endless platform of narrow
transverse
overlapping slats with little interspaces that permitted it to
follow
the curvatures of the street. Upon it were seats, and here and
there
little kiosks, but they swept by too swiftly for him to see what
might
be therein. From this nearest and swiftest platform a series of
others
descended to the centre of the space. Each moved to the right,
each
perceptibly slower than the one above it, but the difference in pace
was
small enough to permit anyone to step from any platform to the
one
adjacent, and so walk uninterruptedly from the swiftest to
the
motionless middle way. Beyond this middle way was another series
of
endless platforms rushing with varying pace to Graham's left. And
seated
in crowds upon the two widest and swiftest platforms, or stepping
from
one to another down the steps, or swarming over the central space,
was
an innumerable and wonderfully diversified multitude of people.
"You must not stop here," shouted Howard suddenly at his side. "You
must
come away at once."
Graham made no answer. He heard without hearing. The platforms ran with
a
roar and the people were shouting. He perceived women and girls
with
flowing hair, beautifully robed, with bands crossing between the
breasts.
These first came out of the confusion. Then he perceived that
the
dominant note in that kaleidoscope of costume was the pale blue that
the
tailor's boy had worn. He became aware of cries of "The Sleeper. What
has
happened to the Sleeper?" and it seemed as though the rushing
platforms
before him were suddenly spattered with the pale buff of human
faces, and
then still more thickly. He saw pointing fingers. He perceived
that the
motionless central area of this huge arcade just opposite to the
balcony
was densely crowded with blue-clad people. Some sort of struggle
had
sprung into life. People seemed to be pushed up the running platforms
on
either side, and carried away against their will. They would spring
off
so soon as they were beyond the thick of the confusion, and run
back
towards the conflict.
"It is the Sleeper. Verily it is the Sleeper," shouted voices. "That
is
never the Sleeper," shouted others. More and more faces were turned
to
him. At the intervals along this central area Graham noted
openings,
pits, apparently the heads of staircases going down with
people
ascending out of them and descending into them. The struggle it
seemed
centred about the one of these nearest to him. People were running
down
the moving platforms to this, leaping dexterously from platform
to
platform. The clustering people on the higher platforms seemed to
divide
their interest between this point and the balcony. A number of
sturdy
little figures clad in a uniform of bright red, and working
methodically
together, were employed it seemed in preventing access to this
descending
staircase. About them a crowd was rapidly accumulating. Their
brilliant
colour contrasted vividly with the whitish-blue of their
antagonists, for
the struggle was indisputable.
He saw these things with Howard shouting in his ear and shaking his
arm.
And then suddenly Howard was gone and he stood alone.
He perceived that the cries of "The Sleeper!" grew in volume, and that
the
people on the nearer platform were standing up. The nearer platform
he
perceived was empty to the right of him, and far across the space
the
platform running in the opposite direction was coming crowded and
passing
away bare. With incredible swiftness a vast crowd had gathered in
the
central space before his eyes; a dense swaying mass of people, and
the
shouts grew from a fitful crying to a voluminous incessant clamour:
"The
Sleeper! The Sleeper!" and yells and cheers, a waving of garments
and
cries of "Stop the Ways!" They were also crying another name strange
to
Graham. It sounded like "Ostrog." The slower platforms were soon
thick
with active people, running against the movement so as to keep
themselves
opposite to him.
"Stop the Ways," they cried. Agile figures ran up from the centre to
the
swift road nearest to him, were borne rapidly past him, shouting
strange,
unintelligible things, and ran back obliquely to the central way.
One
thing he distinguished: "It is indeed the Sleeper. It is indeed
the
Sleeper," they testified.
For a space Graham stood motionless. Then he became vividly aware that
all
this concerned him. He was pleased at his wonderful popularity, he
bowed,
and, seeking a gesture of longer range, waved his arm. He was
astonished at
the violence of uproar that this provoked. The tumult about
the descending
stairway rose to furious violence. He became aware of
crowded balconies, of
men sliding along ropes, of men in trapeze-like
seats hurling athwart the
space. He heard voices behind him, a number of
people descending the steps
through the archway; he suddenly perceived
that his guardian Howard was back
again and gripping his arm painfully,
and shouting inaudibly in his ear.
He turned, and Howard's face was white. "Come back," he heard. "They
will
stop the ways. The whole city will be in confusion."
He perceived a number of men hurrying along the passage of blue
pillars
behind Howard, the red-haired man, the man with the flaxen beard, a
tall
man in vivid vermilion, a crowd of others in red carrying staves, and
all
these people had anxious eager faces.
"Get him away," cried Howard.
"But why?" said Graham. "I don't see--"
"You must come away!" said the man in red in a resolute voice. His
face
and eyes were resolute, too. Graham's glances went from face to face,
and
he was suddenly aware of that most disagreeable flavour in
life,
compulsion. Someone gripped his arm....
He was being dragged away. It seemed as though the tumult suddenly
became
two, as if half the shouts that had come in from this wonderful
roadway had
sprung into the passages of the great building behind him.
Marvelling and
confused, feeling an impotent desire to resist, Graham was
half led, half
thrust, along the passage of blue pillars, and suddenly he
found himself
alone with Howard in a lift and moving swiftly upward.
CHAPTER VI
THE HALL OF THE ATLAS
From the moment when the tailor had bowed his farewell to the moment
when
Graham found himself in the lift, was altogether barely five minutes.
As
yet the haze of his vast interval of sleep hung about him, as yet
the
initial strangeness of his being alive at all in this remote age
touched
everything with wonder, with a sense of the irrational, with
something of
the quality of a realistic dream. He was still detached, an
astonished
spectator, still but half involved in life. What he had seen,
and
especially the last crowded tumult, framed in the setting of the
balcony,
had a spectacular turn, like a thing witnessed from the box of a
theatre.
"I don't understand," he said. "What was the trouble? My mind is in
a
whirl. Why were they shouting? What is the danger?"
"We have our troubles," said Howard. His eyes avoided Graham's
enquiry.
"This is a time of unrest. And, in fact, your appearance, your
waking
just now, has a sort of connexion--"
He spoke jerkily, like a man not quite sure of his breathing. He
stopped
abruptly.
"I don't understand," said Graham.
"It will be clearer later," said Howard.
He glanced uneasily upward, as though he found the progress of the
lift
slow.
"I shall understand better, no doubt, when I have seen my way about
a
little," said Graham puzzled. "It will be--it is bound to be
perplexing.
At present it is all so strange. Anything seems possible.
Anything. In
the details even. Your counting, I understand, is
different."
The lift stopped, and they stepped out into a narrow but very long
passage
between high walls, along which ran an extraordinary number of
tubes and big
cables.
"What a huge place this is!" said Graham. "Is it all one building?
What
place is it?"
"This is one of the city ways for various public services. Light and
so
forth."
"Was it a social trouble--that--in the great roadway place? How are
you
governed? Have you still a police?"
"Several," said Howard.
"Several?"
"About fourteen."
"I don't understand."
"Very probably not. Our social order will probably seem very complex
to
you. To tell you the truth, I don't understand it myself very
clearly. Nobody
does. You will, perhaps--bye and bye. We have to go to
the Council."
Graham's attention was divided between the urgent necessity of
his
inquiries and the people in the passages and halls they were
traversing.
For a moment his mind would be concentrated upon Howard and the
halting
answers he made, and then he would lose the thread in response to
some
vivid unexpected impression. Along the passages, in the halls, half
the
people seemed to be men in the red uniform. The pale blue canvas that
had
been so abundant in the aisle of moving ways did not appear.
Invariably
these men looked at him, and saluted him and Howard as they
passed.
He had a clear vision of entering a long corridor, and there were a
number
of girls sitting on low seats, as though in a class. He saw no
teacher, but
only a novel apparatus from which he fancied a voice
proceeded. The girls
regarded him and his conductor, he thought, with
curiosity and astonishment.
But he was hurried on before he could form
a clear idea of the gathering. He
judged they knew Howard and not
himself, and that they wondered who he was.
This Howard, it seemed, was
a person of importance. But then he was also
merely Graham's guardian.
That was odd.
There came a passage in twilight, and into this passage a footway hung
so
that he could see the feet and ankles of people going to and fro
thereon,
but no more of them. Then vague impressions of galleries and of
casual
astonished passers-by turning round to stare after the two of them
with
their red-clad guard.
The stimulus of the restoratives he had taken was only temporary. He
was
speedily fatigued by this excessive haste. He asked Howard to slacken
his
speed. Presently he was in a lift that had a window upon the great
street
space, but this was glazed and did not open, and they were too high
for
him to see the moving platforms below. But he saw people going to and
fro
along cables and along strange, frail-looking bridges.
Thence they passed across the street and at a vast height above it.
They
crossed by means of a narrow bridge closed in with glass, so clear
that
it made him giddy even to remember it. The floor of it also was of
glass.
From his memory of the cliffs between New Quay and Boscastle, so
remote
in time, and so recent in his experience, it seemed to him that
they
must be near four hundred feet above the moving ways. He stopped,
looked
down between his legs upon the swarming blue and red multitudes,
minute
and foreshortened, struggling and gesticulating still towards the
little
balcony far below, a little toy balcony, it seemed, where he had
so
recently been standing. A thin haze and the glare of the mighty globes
of
light obscured everything. A man seated in a little openwork cradle
shot
by from some point still higher than the little narrow bridge,
rushing
down a cable as swiftly almost as if he were falling. Graham
stopped
involuntarily to watch this strange passenger vanish below, and then
his
eyes went back to the tumultuous struggle.
Along one of the faster ways rushed a thick crowd of red spots. This
broke
up into individuals as it approached the balcony, and went pouring
down the
slower ways towards the dense struggling crowd on the central
area. These men
in red appeared to be armed with sticks or truncheons;
they seemed to be
striking and thrusting. A great shouting, cries of
wrath, screaming, burst
out and came up to Graham, faint and thin. "Go
on," cried Howard, laying
hands on him.
Another man rushed down a cable. Graham suddenly glanced up to see
whence
he came, and beheld through the glassy roof and the network of cables
and
girders, dim rhythmically passing forms like the vanes of windmills,
and
between them glimpses of a remote and pallid sky. Then Howard had
thrust
him forward across the bridge, and he was in a little narrow
passage
decorated with geometrical patterns.
"I want to see more of that," cried Graham, resisting.
"No, no," cried Howard, still gripping his arm. "This way. You must
go
this way." And the men in red following them seemed ready to
enforce
his orders.
Some negroes in a curious wasp-like uniform of black and yellow
appeared
down the passage, and one hastened to throw up a sliding shutter
that
had seemed a door to Graham, and led the way through it. Graham
found
himself in a gallery overhanging the end of a great chamber.
The
attendant in black and yellow crossed this, thrust up a second
shutter
and stood waiting.
This place had the appearance of an ante-room. He saw a number of
people
in the central space, and at the opposite end a large and
imposing doorway at
the top of a flight of steps, heavily curtained but
giving a glimpse of some
still larger hall beyond. He perceived white
men in red and other negroes in
black and yellow standing stiffly about
those portals.
As they crossed the gallery he heard a whisper from below, "The
Sleeper,"
and was aware of a turning of heads, a hum of observation. They
entered
another little passage in the wall of this ante-chamber, and then
he
found himself on an iron-railed gallery of metal that passed round
the
side of the great hall he had already seen through the curtains.
He
entered the place at the corner, so that he received the
fullest
impression of its huge proportions. The black in the wasp uniform
stood
aside like a well-trained servant, and closed the valve behind him.
Compared with any of the places Graham had seen thus far, this second
hall
appeared to be decorated with extreme richness. On a pedestal at the
remoter
end, and more brilliantly lit than any other object, was a
gigantic white
figure of Atlas, strong and strenuous, the globe upon his
bowed shoulders. It
was the first thing to strike his attention, it was
so vast, so patiently and
painfully real, so white and simple. Save for
this figure and for a dais in
the centre, the wide floor of the place was
a shining vacancy. The dais was
remote in the greatness of the area; it
would have looked a mere slab of
metal had it not been for the group of
seven men who stood about a table on
it, and gave an inkling of its
proportions. They were all dressed in white
robes, they seemed to have
arisen that moment from their seats, and they were
regarding Graham
steadfastly. At the end of the table he perceived the
glitter of some
mechanical appliances.
Howard led him along the end gallery until they were opposite this
mighty
labouring figure. Then he stopped. The two men in red who had
followed
them into the gallery came and stood on either hand of Graham.
"You must remain here," murmured Howard, "for a few moments," and,
without
waiting for a reply, hurried away along the gallery.
"But, _why_--?" began Graham.
He moved as if to follow Howard, and found his path obstructed by one
of
the men in red. "You have to wait here, Sire," said the man in red.
"_Why_?"
"Orders, Sire."
"Whose orders?"
"Our orders, Sire."
Graham looked his exasperation.
"What place is this?" he said presently. "Who are those men?"
"They are the lords of the Council, Sire."
"What Council?"
"_The_ Council."
"Oh!" said Graham, and after an equally ineffectual attempt at the
other
man, went to the railing and stared at the distant men in white,
who
stood watching him and whispering together.
The Council? He perceived there were now eight, though how the
newcomer
had arrived he had not observed. They made no gestures of greeting;
they
stood regarding him as in the nineteenth century a group of men
might
have stood in the street regarding a distant balloon that had
suddenly
floated into view. What council could it be that gathered there,
that
little body of men beneath the significant white Atlas, secluded
from
every eavesdropper in this impressive spaciousness? And why should he
be
brought to them, and be looked at strangely and spoken of
inaudibly?
Howard appeared beneath, walking quickly across the polished
floor
towards them. As he drew near he bowed and performed certain
peculiar
movements, apparently of a ceremonious nature. Then he ascended the
steps
of the dais, and stood by the apparatus at the end of the table.
Graham watched that visible inaudible conversation. Occasionally, one
of
the white-robed men would glance towards him. He strained his ears
in
vain. The gesticulation of two of the speakers became animated.
He
glanced from them to the passive faces of his attendants.... When
he
looked again Howard was extending his hands and moving his head like
a
man who protests. He was interrupted, it seemed, by one of
the
white-robed men rapping the table.
The conversation lasted an interminable time to Graham's sense. His
eyes
rose to the still giant at whose feet the Council sat. Thence
they
wandered to the walls of the hall. It was decorated in long
painted
panels of a quasi-Japanese type, many of them very beautiful.
These
panels were grouped in a great and elaborate framing of dark
metal,
which passed into the metallic caryatidae of the galleries, and
the
great structural lines of the interior. The facile grace of these
panels
enhanced the mighty white effort that laboured in the centre of
the
scheme. Graham's eyes came back to the Council, and Howard
was
descending the steps. As he drew nearer his features could
be
distinguished, and Graham saw that he was flushed and blowing out
his
cheeks. His countenance was still disturbed when presently he
reappeared
along the gallery.
"This way," he said concisely, and they went on in silence to a
little
door that opened at their approach. The two men in red stopped on
either
side of this door. Howard and Graham passed in, and Graham,
glancing
back, saw the white-robed Council still standing in a close group
and
looking at him. Then the door closed behind him with a heavy thud,
and
for the first time since his awakening he was in silence. The
floor,
even, was noiseless to his feet.
Howard opened another door, and they were in the first of two
contiguous
chambers furnished in white and green. "What Council was that?"
began
Graham. "What were they discussing? What have they to do with me?"
Howard
closed the door carefully, heaved a huge sigh, and said something in
an
undertone. He walked slantingways across the room and turned, blowing
out
his cheeks again. "Ugh!" he grunted, a man relieved.
Graham stood regarding him.
"You must understand," began Howard abruptly, avoiding Graham's
eyes,
"that our social order is very complex. A half explanation, a
bare
unqualified statement would give you false impressions. As a matter
of
fact--it is a case of compound interest partly--your small fortune,
and
the fortune of your cousin Warming which was left to you--and
certain
other beginnings--have become very considerable. And in other ways
that
will be hard for you to understand, you have become a person
of
significance--of very considerable significance--involved in
the
world's affairs."
He stopped.
"Yes?" said Graham.
"We have grave social troubles."
"Yes?"
"Things have come to such a pass that, in fact, it is advisable to
seclude
you here."
"Keep me prisoner!" exclaimed Graham.
"Well--to ask you to keep in seclusion."
Graham turned on him. "This is strange!" he said.
"No harm will be done you."
"No harm!"
"But you must be kept here--"
"While I learn my position, I presume."
"Precisely."
"Very well then. Begin. Why _harm_?"
"Not now."
"Why not?"
"It is too long a story, Sire."
"All the more reason I should begin at once. You say I am a person
of
importance. What was that shouting I heard? Why is a great
multitude
shouting and excited because my trance is over, and who are the men
in
white in that huge council chamber?"
"All in good time, Sire," said Howard. "But not crudely, not crudely.
This
is one of those flimsy times when no man has a settled mind.
Your
awakening--no one expected your awakening. The Council is
consulting."
"What council?"
"The Council you saw."
Graham made a petulant movement. "This is not right," he said. "I
should
be told what is happening."
"You must wait. Really you must wait."
Graham sat down abruptly. "I suppose since I have waited so long to
resume
life," he said, "that I must wait a little longer."
"That is better," said Howard. "Yes, that is much better. And I must
leave
you alone. For a space. While I attend the discussion in the
Council.... I am
sorry."
He went towards the noiseless door, hesitated and vanished.
Graham walked to the door, tried it, found it securely fastened in
some
way he never came to understand, turned about, paced the room
restlessly,
made the circuit of the room, and sat down. He remained sitting
for some
time with folded arms and knitted brow, biting his finger nails
and
trying to piece together the kaleidoscopic impressions of this first
hour
of awakened life; the vast mechanical spaces, the endless series
of
chambers and passages, the great struggle that roared and
splashed
through these strange ways, the little group of remote unsympathetic
men
beneath the colossal Atlas, Howard's mysterious behaviour. There was
an
inkling of some vast inheritance already in his mind--a vast
inheritance
perhaps misapplied--of some unprecedented importance and
opportunity.
What had he to do? And this room's secluded silence was eloquent
of
imprisonment!
It came into Graham's mind with irresistible conviction that this
series
of magnificent impressions was a dream. He tried to shut his eyes
and
succeeded, but that time-honoured device led to no awakening.
Presently he began to touch and examine all the unfamiliar appointments
of
the two small rooms in which he found himself.
In a long oval panel of mirror he saw himself and stopped astonished.
He
was clad in a graceful costume of purple and bluish white, with a
little
greyshot beard trimmed to a point, and his hair, its blackness
streaked
now with bands of grey, arranged over his forehead in an unfamiliar
but
pleasing manner. He seemed a man of five-and-forty perhaps. For a
moment
he did not perceive this was himself.
A flash of laughter came with the recognition. "To call on old
Warming
like this!" he exclaimed, "and make him take me out to lunch!"
Then he thought of meeting first one and then another of the few
familiar
acquaintances of his early manhood, and in the midst of his
amusement
realised that every soul with whom he might jest had died many
score of
years ago. The thought smote him abruptly and keenly; he stopped
short,
the expression of his face changed to a white consternation.
The tumultuous memory of the moving platforms and the huge façade of
that
wonderful street reasserted itself. The shouting multitudes came
back
clear and vivid, and those remote, inaudible, unfriendly councillors
in
white. He felt himself a little figure, very small and
ineffectual,
pitifully conspicuous. And all about him, the world
was--_strange_.
CHAPTER VII
IN THE SILENT ROOMS
Presently Graham resumed his examination of his apartments.
Curiosity
kept him moving in spite of his fatigue. The inner room, he
perceived,
was high, and its ceiling dome shaped, with an oblong aperture in
the
centre, opening into a funnel in which a wheel of broad vanes seemed
to
be rotating, apparently driving the air up the shaft. The faint
humming
note of its easy motion was the only clear sound in that quiet place.
As
these vanes sprang up one after the other, Graham could get
transient
glimpses of the sky. He was surprised to see a star.
This drew his attention to the fact that the bright lighting of
these
rooms was due to a multitude of very faint glow lamps set about
the
cornices. There were no windows. And he began to recall that along
all
the vast chambers and passages he had traversed with Howard he
had
observed no windows at all. Had there been windows? There were windows
on
the street indeed, but were they for light? Or was the whole city lit
day
and night for evermore, so that there was no night there?
And another thing dawned upon him. There was no fireplace in either
room.
Was the season summer, and were these merely summer apartments, or
was
the whole city uniformly heated or cooled? He became interested in
these
questions, began examining the smooth texture of the walls, the
simply
constructed bed, the ingenious arrangements by which the labour
of
bedroom service was practically abolished. And over everything was
a
curious absence of deliberate ornament, a bare grace of form and
colour,
that he found very pleasing to the eye. There were several
very
comfortable chairs, a light table on silent runners carrying
several
bottles of fluids and glasses, and two plates bearing a clear
substance
like jelly. Then he noticed there were no books, no newspapers,
no
writing materials. "The world has changed indeed," he said.
He observed one entire side of the outer room was set with rows
of
peculiar double cylinders inscribed with green lettering on white
that
harmonized with the decorative scheme of the room, and in the centre
of
this side projected a little apparatus about a yard square and having
a
white smooth face to the room. A chair faced this. He had a
transitory
idea that these cylinders might be books, or a modern substitute
for
books, but at first it did not seem so.
The lettering on the cylinders puzzled him. At first sight it seemed
like
Russian. Then he noticed a suggestion of mutilated English about
certain
of the words.
"Thi Man huwdbi Kin" forced itself on him as "The Man who would be King."
"Phonetic spelling," he said. He remembered reading a story with
that
title, then he recalled the story vividly, one of the best stories in
the
world. But this thing before him was not a book as he understood it.
He
puzzled out the titles of two adjacent cylinders. "The Heart of
Darkness"
he had never heard of before nor "The Madonna of the Future"--no
doubt if
they were indeed stories, they were by post-Victorian authors.
He puzzled over this peculiar cylinder for some time and replaced it.
Then
he turned to the square apparatus and examined that. He opened a
sort of lid
and found one of the double cylinders within, and on the
upper edge a little
stud like the stud of an electric bell. He pressed
this and a rapid clicking
began and ceased. He became aware of voices and
music, and noticed a play of
colour on the smooth front face. He suddenly
realised what this might be, and
stepped back to regard it.
On the flat surface was now a little picture, very vividly coloured,
and
in this picture were figures that moved. Not only did they move, but
they
were conversing in clear small voices. It was exactly like reality
viewed
through an inverted opera glass and heard through a long tube.
His
interest was seized at once by the situation, which presented a
man
pacing up and down and vociferating angry things to a pretty but
petulant
woman. Both were in the picturesque costume that seemed so strange
to
Graham. "I have worked," said the man, "but what have you been doing?"
"Ah!" said Graham. He forgot everything else, and sat down in the
chair.
Within five minutes he heard himself, named, heard "when the
Sleeper
wakes," used jestingly as a proverb for remote postponement, and
passed
himself by, a thing remote and incredible. But in a little while he
knew
those two people like intimate friends.
At last the miniature drama came to an end, and the square face of
the
apparatus was blank again.
It was a strange world into which he had been permitted to
see,
unscrupulous, pleasure seeking, energetic, subtle, a world too of
dire
economic struggle; there were allusions he did not understand,
incidents
that conveyed strange suggestions of altered moral ideals, flashes
of
dubious enlightenment. The blue canvas that bulked so largely in
his
first impression of the city ways appeared again and again as the
costume
of the common people. He had no doubt the story was contemporary, and
its
intense realism was undeniable. And the end had been a tragedy
that
oppressed him. He sat staring at the blankness.
He started and rubbed his eyes. He had been so absorbed in the
latter-day
substitute for a novel, that he awoke to the little green and
white room
with more than a touch of the surprise of his first awakening.
He stood up, and abruptly he was back in his own wonderland. The
clearness
of the kinetoscope drama passed, and the struggle in the vast
place of
streets, the ambiguous Council, the swift phases of his waking
hour, came
back. These people had spoken of the Council with suggestions
of a vague
universality of power. And they had spoken of the Sleeper; it
had not really
struck him vividly at the time that he was the Sleeper. He
had to recall
precisely what they had said....
He walked into the bedroom and peered up through the quick intervals
of
the revolving fan. As the fan swept round, a dim turmoil like the
noise
of machinery came in rhythmic eddies. All else was silence. Though
the
perpetual day still irradiated his apartments, he perceived the
little
intermittent strip of sky was now deep blue--black almost, with a dust
of
little stars....
He resumed his examination of the rooms. He could find no way of
opening
the padded door, no bell nor other means of calling for attendance.
His
feeling of wonder was in abeyance; but he was curious, anxious
for
information. He wanted to know exactly how he stood to these new
things.
He tried to compose himself to wait until someone came to him.
Presently
he became restless and eager for information, for distraction, for
fresh
sensations.
He went back to the apparatus in the other room, and had soon puzzled
out
the method of replacing the cylinders by others. As he did so, it
came
into his mind that it must be these little appliances had fixed
the
language so that it was still clear and understandable after two
hundred
years. The haphazard cylinders he substituted displayed a
musical
fantasia. At first it was beautiful, and then it was sensuous.
He
presently recognised what appeared to him to be an altered version of
the
story of Tannhauser. The music was unfamiliar. But the rendering
was
realistic, and with a contemporary unfamiliarity. Tannhauser did not
go
to a Venusberg, but to a Pleasure City. What was a Pleasure City?
A
dream, surely, the fancy of a fantastic, voluptuous writer.
He became interested, curious. The story developed with a flavour
of
strangely twisted sentimentality. Suddenly he did not like it. He
liked
it less as it proceeded.
He had a revulsion of feeling. These were no pictures, no
idealisations,
but photographed realities. He wanted no more of the
twenty-second
century Venusberg. He forgot the part played by the model in
nineteenth
century art, and gave way to an archaic indignation. He rose,
angry and
half ashamed at himself for witnessing this thing even in solitude.
He
pulled forward the apparatus, and with some violence sought for a
means
of stopping its action. Something snapped. A violet spark stung
and
convulsed his arm and the thing was still. When he attempted next day
to
replace these Tannhauser cylinders by another pair, he found
the
apparatus broken....
He struck out a path oblique to the room and paced to and fro,
struggling
with intolerable vast impressions. The things he had derived from
the
cylinders and the things he had seen, conflicted, confused him. It
seemed
to him the most amazing thing of all that in his thirty years of life
he
had never tried to shape a picture of these coming times. "We were
making
the future," he said, "and hardly any of us troubled to think what
future
we were making. And here it is!"
"What have they got to, what has been done? How do I come into the
midst
of it all?" The vastness of street and house he was prepared for,
the
multitudes of people. But conflicts in the city ways! And
the
systematised sensuality of a class of rich men!
He thought of Bellamy, the hero of whose Socialistic Utopia had so
oddly
anticipated this actual experience. But here was no Utopia,
no
Socialistic state. He had already seen enough to realise that the
ancient
antithesis of luxury, waste and sensuality on the one hand and
abject
poverty on the other, still prevailed. He knew enough of the
essential
factors of life to understand that correlation. And not only were
the
buildings of the city gigantic and the crowds in the street gigantic,
but
the voices he had heard in the ways, the uneasiness of Howard, the
very
atmosphere spoke of gigantic discontent. What country was he in?
Still
England it seemed, and yet strangely "un-English." His mind glanced
at
the rest of the world, and saw only an enigmatical veil.
He prowled about his apartment, examining everything as a caged
animal
might do. He was very tired, with that feverish exhaustion that does
not
admit of rest. He listened for long spaces under the ventilator to
catch
some distant echo of the tumults he felt must be proceeding in the
city.
He began to talk to himself. "Two hundred and three years!" he said
to
himself over and over again, laughing stupidly. "Then I am two
hundred
and thirty-three years old! The oldest inhabitant. Surely they
haven't
reversed the tendency of our time and gone back to the rule of
the
oldest. My claims are indisputable. Mumble, mumble. I remember
the
Bulgarian atrocities as though it was yesterday. 'Tis a great age!
Ha
ha!" He was surprised at first to hear himself laughing, and then
laughed
again deliberately and louder. Then he realised that he was
behaving
foolishly. "Steady," he said. "Steady!"
His pacing became more regular. "This new world," he said. "I
don't
understand it. _Why_? ... But it is all _why_!"
"I suppose they can fly and do all sorts of things. Let me try
and
remember just how it began."
He was surprised at first to find how vague the memories of his
first
thirty years had become. He remembered fragments, for the most
part
trivial moments, things of no great importance that he had observed.
His
boyhood seemed the most accessible at first, he recalled school books
and
certain lessons in mensuration. Then he revived the more salient
features
of his life, memories of the wife long since dead, her magic
influence
now gone beyond corruption, of his rivals and friends and
betrayers, of
the decision of this issue and that, and then of his last years
of
misery, of fluctuating resolves, and at last of his strenuous studies.
In
a little while he perceived he had it all again; dim perhaps, like
metal
long laid aside, but in no way defective or injured, capable
of
re-polishing. And the hue of it was a deepening misery. Was it
worth
re-polishing? By a miracle he had been lifted out of a life that
had
become intolerable....
He reverted to his present condition. He wrestled with the facts in
vain.
It became an inextricable tangle. He saw the sky through the
ventilator
pink with dawn. An old persuasion came out of the dark recesses of
his
memory. "I must sleep," he said. It appeared as a delightful relief
from
this mental distress and from the growing pain and heaviness of
his
limbs. He went to the strange little bed, lay down and was
presently
asleep....
He was destined to become very familiar indeed with these
apartments
before he left them, for he remained imprisoned for three days.
During
that time no one, except Howard, entered the rooms. The marvel of
his
fate mingled with and in some way minimised the marvel of his
survival.
He had awakened to mankind it seemed only to be snatched away into
this
unaccountable solitude. Howard came regularly with subtly sustaining
and
nutritive fluids, and light and pleasant foods, quite strange to
Graham.
He always closed the door carefully as he entered. On matters of
detail
he was increasingly obliging, but the bearing of Graham on the
great
issues that were evidently being contested so closely beyond
the
sound-proof walls that enclosed him, he would not elucidate. He
evaded,
as politely as possible, every question on the position of affairs in
the
outer world.
And in those three days Graham's incessant thoughts went far and wide.
All
that he had seen, all this elaborate contrivance to prevent him
seeing,
worked together in his mind. Almost every possible interpretation
of his
position he debated--even as it chanced, the right interpretation.
Things
that presently happened to him, came to him at last credible, by
virtue of
this seclusion. When at length the moment of his release
arrived, it found
him prepared....
Howard's bearing went far to deepen Graham's impression of his own
strange
importance; the door between its opening and closing seemed to
admit with him
a breath of momentous happening. His enquiries became
more definite and
searching. Howard retreated through protests and
difficulties. The awakening
was unforeseen, he repeated; it happened
to have fallen in with the trend of
a social convulsion. "To explain
it I must tell you the history of a gross
and a half of years,"
protested Howard.
"The thing is this," said Graham. "You are afraid of something I shall
do.
In some way I am arbitrator--I might be arbitrator."
"It is not that. But you have--I may tell you this much--the
automatic
increase of your property puts great possibilities of interference
in
your hands. And in certain other ways you have influence, with
your
eighteenth century notions."
"Nineteenth century," corrected Graham.
"With your old world notions, anyhow, ignorant as you are of every
feature
of our State."
"Am I a fool?"
"Certainly not."
"Do I seem to be the sort of man who would act rashly?"
"You were never expected to act at all. No one counted on your
awakening.
No one dreamt you would ever awake. The Council had surrounded
you with
antiseptic conditions. As a matter of fact, we thought that you
were dead--a
mere arrest of decay. And--but it is too complex. We dare
not
suddenly---while you are still half awake."
"It won't do," said Graham. "Suppose it is as you say--why am I not
being
crammed night and day with facts and warnings and all the wisdom of
the
time to fit me for my responsibilities? Am I any wiser now than two
days
ago, if it is two days, when I awoke?"
Howard pulled his lip.
"I am beginning to feel--every hour I feel more clearly--a system
of
concealment of which you are the face. Is this Council, or committee,
or
whatever they are, cooking the accounts of my estate? Is that it?"
"That note of suspicion--" said Howard.
"Ugh!" said Graham. "Now, mark my words, it will be ill for those who
have
put me here. It will be ill. I am alive. Make no doubt of it, I am
alive.
Every day my pulse is stronger and my mind clearer and more
vigorous. No more
quiescence. I am a man come back to life. And I want
to _live_--"
"_Live_!"
Howard's face lit with an idea. He came towards Graham and spoke in
an
easy confidential tone.
"The Council secludes you here for your good. You are
restless.
Naturally--an energetic man! You find it dull here. But we are
anxious
that everything you may desire--every desire--every sort of desire
...
There may be something. Is there any sort of company?"
He paused meaningly.
"Yes," said Graham thoughtfully. "There is."
"Ah! _Now_! We have treated you neglectfully."
"The crowds in yonder streets of yours."
"That," said Howard, "I am afraid--But--"
Graham began pacing the room. Howard stood near the door watching him.
The
implication of Howard's suggestion was only half evident to Graham.
Company?
Suppose he were to accept the proposal, demand some sort of
_company_? Would
there be any possibilities of gathering from the
conversation of this
additional person some vague inkling of the struggle
that had broken out so
vividly at his waking moment? He meditated again,
and the suggestion took
colour. He turned on Howard abruptly.
"What do you mean by company?"
Howard raised his eyes and shrugged his shoulders. "Human beings,"
he
said, with a curious smile on his heavy face. "Our social ideas,"
he
said, "have a certain increased liberality, perhaps, in comparison
with
your times. If a man wishes to relieve such a tedium as this--by
feminine
society, for instance. We think it no scandal. We have cleared our
minds
of formulae. There is in our city a class, a necessary class, no
longer
despised--discreet--"
Graham stopped dead.
"It would pass the time," said Howard. "It is a thing I should
perhaps
have thought of before, but, as a matter of fact, so much is
happening--"
He indicated the exterior world.
Graham hesitated. For a moment the figure of a possible woman
dominated
his mind with an intense attraction. Then he flashed into
anger.
"_No_!" he shouted.
He began striding rapidly up and down the room. "Everything you
say,
everything you do, convinces me--of some great issue in which I
am
concerned. I do not want to pass the time, as you call it. Yes, I
know.
Desire and indulgence are life in a sense--and Death! Extinction! In
my
life before I slept I had worked out that pitiful question. I will
not
begin again. There is a city, a multitude--. And meanwhile I am here
like
a rabbit in a bag."
His rage surged high. He choked for a moment and began to wave
his
clenched fists. He gave way to an anger fit, he swore archaic curses.
His
gestures had the quality of physical threats.
"I do not know who your party may be. I am in the dark, and you keep me
in
the dark. But I know this, that I am secluded here for no good
purpose. For
no good purpose. I warn you, I warn you of the consequences.
Once I come at
my power--"
He realised that to threaten thus might be a danger to himself.
He
stopped. Howard stood regarding him with a curious expression.
"I take it this is a message to the Council," said Howard.
Graham had a momentary impulse to leap upon the man, fell or stun him.
It
must have shown upon his face; at any rate Howard's movement was
quick.
In a second the noiseless door had closed again, and the man from
the
nineteenth century was alone.
For a moment he stood rigid, with clenched hands half raised. Then
he
flung them down. "What a fool I have been!" he said, and gave way to
his
anger again, stamping about the room and shouting curses.... For a
long
time he kept himself in a sort of frenzy, raging at his position, at
his
own folly, at the knaves who had imprisoned him. He did this because
he
did not want to look calmly at his position. He clung to
his
anger--because he was afraid of fear.
Presently he found himself reasoning with himself. This imprisonment
was
unaccountable, but no doubt the legal forms--new legal forms--of
the time
permitted it. It must, of course, be legal. These people were
two hundred
years further on in the march of civilisation than the
Victorian generation.
It was not likely they would be less--humane. Yet
they had cleared their
minds of formulae! Was humanity a formula as
well as chastity?
His imagination set to work to suggest things that might be done to
him.
The attempts of his reason to dispose of these suggestions, though
for
the most part logically valid, were quite unavailing. "Why
should
anything be done to me?"
"If the worst comes to the worst," he found himself saying at last, "I
can
give up what they want. But what do they want? And why don't they ask
me for
it instead of cooping me up?"
He returned to his former preoccupation with the Council's
possible
intentions. He began to reconsider the details of Howard's
behaviour,
sinister glances, inexplicable hesitations. Then, for a time, his
mind
circled about the idea of escaping from these rooms; but whither could
he
escape into this vast, crowded world? He would be worse off than a
Saxon
yeoman suddenly dropped into nineteenth century London. And besides,
how
could anyone escape from these rooms?
"How can it benefit anyone if harm should happen to me?"
He thought of the tumult, the great social trouble of which he was
so
unaccountably the axis. A text, irrelevant enough, and yet
curiously
insistent, came floating up out of the darkness of his memory. This
also
a Council had said:
"It is expedient for us that one man should die for the people."
CHAPTER VIII
THE ROOF SPACES
As the fans in the circular aperture of the inner room rotated
and
permitted glimpses of the night, dim sounds drifted in thereby.
And
Graham, standing underneath, was startled by the sound of a voice.
He peered up and saw in the intervals of the rotation, dark and dim,
the
face and shoulders of a man regarding him. Then a dark hand was
extended,
the swift vane struck it, swung round and beat on with a little
brownish
patch on the edge of its thin blade, and something began to
fall
therefrom upon the floor, dripping silently.
Graham looked down, and there were spots of blood at his feet. He
looked
up again in a strange excitement. The figure had gone.
He remained motionless--his every sense intent upon the flickering
patch
of darkness. He became aware of some faint, remote, dark specks
floating
lightly through the outer air. They came down towards him,
fitfully,
eddyingly, and passed aside out of the uprush from the fan. A gleam
of
light flickered, the specks flashed white, and then the darkness
came
again. Warmed and lit as he was, he perceived that it was snowing
within
a few feet of him.
Graham walked across the room and came back to the ventilator again.
He
saw the head of a man pass near. There was a sound of whispering. Then
a
smart blow on some metallic substance, effort, voices, and the
vanes
stopped. A gust of snowflakes whirled into the room, and vanished
before
they touched the floor. "Don't be afraid," said a voice.
Graham stood under the vane. "Who are you?" he whispered.
For a moment there was nothing but a swaying of the fan, and then the
head
of a man was thrust cautiously into the opening. His face
appeared nearly
inverted to Graham; his dark hair was wet with
dissolving flakes of snow upon
it. His arm went up into the darkness
holding something unseen. He had a
youthful face and bright eyes, and
the veins of his forehead were swollen. He
seemed to be exerting
himself to maintain his position.
For several seconds neither he nor Graham spoke.
"You were the Sleeper?" said the stranger at last.
"Yes," said Graham. "What do you want with me?"
"I come from Ostrog, Sire."
"Ostrog?"
The man in the ventilator twisted his head round so that his profile
was
towards Graham. He appeared to be listening. Suddenly there was a
hasty
exclamation, and the intruder sprang back just in time to escape
the
sweep of the released fan. And when Graham peered up there was
nothing
visible but the slowly falling snow.
It was perhaps a quarter of an hour before anything returned to
the
ventilator. But at last came the same metallic interference again;
the
fans stopped and the face reappeared. Graham had remained all this
time
in the same place, alert and tremulously excited.
"Who are you? What do you want?" he said.
"We want to speak to you, Sire," said the intruder. "We want--I
can't hold
the thing. We have been trying to find a way to you--these
three days."
"Is it rescue?" whispered Graham. "Escape?"
"Yes, Sire. If you will."
"You are my party--the party of the Sleeper?"
"Yes, Sire."
"What am I to do?" said Graham.
There was a struggle. The stranger's arm appeared, and his hand
was
bleeding. His knees came into view over the edge of the funnel.
"Stand
away from me," he said, and he dropped rather heavily on his hands
and
one shoulder at Graham's feet. The released ventilator whirled
noisily.
The stranger rolled over, sprang up nimbly and stood panting, hand
to a
bruised shoulder, and with his bright eyes on Graham.
"You are indeed the Sleeper," he said. "I saw you asleep. When it was
the
law that anyone might see you."
"I am the man who was in the trance," said Graham. "They have
imprisoned
me here. I have been here since I awoke--at least three days."
The intruder seemed about to speak, heard something, glanced swiftly
at
the door, and suddenly left Graham and ran towards it, shouting
quick
incoherent words. A bright wedge of steel flashed in his hand, and
he
began tap, tap, a quick succession of blows upon the hinges.
"Mind!"
cried a voice. "Oh!" The voice came from above.
Graham glanced up, saw the soles of two feet, ducked, was struck on
the
shoulder by one of them, and a heavy weight bore him to the earth.
He
fell on his knees and forward, and the weight went over his head.
He
knelt up and saw a second man from above seated before him.
"I did not see you, Sire," panted the man. He rose and assisted
Graham to
rise. "Are you hurt, Sire?" he panted. A succession of heavy
blows on the
ventilator began, something fell close to Graham's face,
and a shivering edge
of white metal danced, fell over, and lay fiat
upon the floor.
"What is this?" cried Graham, confused and looking at the ventilator.
"Who
are you? What are you going to do? Remember, I understand nothing."
"Stand back," said the stranger, and drew him from under the ventilator
as
another fragment of metal fell heavily.
"We want you to come, Sire," panted the newcomer, and Graham glancing
at
his face again, saw a new cut had changed from white to red on
his
forehead, and a couple of little trickles of blood starting
therefrom.
"Your people call for you."
"Come where? My people?"
"To the hall about the markets. Your life is in danger here. We
have
spies. We learned but just in time. The Council has decided--this
very
day--either to drug or kill you. And everything is ready. The people
are
drilled, the Wind-Vane police, the engineers, and half the
way-gearers
are with us. We have the halls crowded--shouting. The whole city
shouts
against the Council. We have arms." He wiped the blood with his
hand.
"Your life here is not worth--"
"But why arms?"
"The people have risen to protect you, Sire. What?"
He turned quickly as the man who had first come down made a hissing
with
his teeth. Graham saw the latter start back, gesticulate to them
to
conceal themselves, and move as if to hide behind the opening door.
As he did so Howard appeared, a little tray in one hand and his heavy
face
downcast. He started, looked up, the door slammed behind him, the
tray tilted
side-ways, and the steel wedge struck him behind the ear. He
went down like a
felled tree, and lay as he fell athwart the floor of the
outer room. The man
who had struck him bent hastily, studied his face for
a moment, rose, and
returned to his work at the door.
"Your poison!" said a voice in Graham's ear.
Then abruptly they were in darkness. The innumerable cornice lights
had
been extinguished. Graham saw the aperture of the ventilator with
ghostly
snow whirling above it and dark figures moving hastily. Three knelt
on
the vane. Some dim thing--a ladder--was being lowered through
the
opening, and a hand appeared holding a fitful yellow light.
He had a moment of hesitation. But the manner of these men, their
swift
alacrity, their words, marched so completely with his own fears of
the
Council, with his idea and hope of a rescue, that it lasted not a
moment.
And his people awaited him!
"I do not understand," he said. "I trust. Tell me what to do."
The man with the cut brow gripped Graham's arm. "Clamber up the
ladder,"
he whispered. "Quick. They will have heard--"
Graham felt for the ladder with extended hands, put his foot on the
lower
rung, and, turning his head, saw over the shoulder of the nearest
man, in the
yellow flicker of the light, the first-comer astride over
Howard and still
working at the door. Graham turned to the ladder again,
and was thrust by his
conductor and helped up by those above, and then
he was standing on something
hard and cold and slippery outside the
ventilating funnel.
He shivered. He was aware of a great difference in the temperature. Half
a
dozen men stood about him, and light flakes of snow touched hands and
face
and melted. For a moment it was dark, then for a flash a ghastly
violet
white, and then everything was dark again.
He saw he had come out upon the roof of the vast city structure which
had
replaced the miscellaneous houses, streets and open spaces of
Victorian
London. The place upon which he stood was level, with huge
serpentine
cables lying athwart it in every direction. The circular wheels of
a
number of windmills loomed indistinct and gigantic through the
darkness
and snowfall, and roared with a varying loudness as the fitful wind
rose
and fell. Some way off an intermittent white light smote up from
below,
touched the snow eddies with a transient glitter, and made an
evanescent
spectre in the night; and here and there, low down, some vaguely
outlined
wind-driven mechanism flickered with livid sparks.
All this he appreciated in a fragmentary manner as his rescuers
stood
about him. Someone threw a thick soft cloak of fur-like texture
about
him, and fastened it by buckled straps at waist and shoulders.
Things
were said briefly, decisively. Someone thrust him forward.
Before his mind was yet clear a dark shape gripped his arm. "This
way,"
said this shape, urging him along, and pointed Graham across the
flat
roof in the direction of a dim semicircular haze of light. Graham
obeyed.
"Mind!" said a voice, as Graham stumbled against a cable. "Between
them
and not across them," said the voice. And, "We must hurry."
"Where are the people?" said Graham. "The people you said awaited me?"
The stranger did not answer. He left Graham's arm as the path
grew
narrower, and led the way with rapid strides. Graham followed blindly.
In
a minute he found himself running. "Are the others coming?" he
panted,
but received no reply. His companion glanced back and ran on. They
came
to a sort of pathway of open metal-work, transverse to the direction
they
had come, and they turned aside to follow this. Graham looked back,
but
the snowstorm had hidden the others.
"Come on!" said his guide. Running now, they drew near a little
windmill
spinning high in the air. "Stoop," said Graham's guide, and they
avoided
an endless band running roaring up to the shaft of the vane. "This
way!"
and they were ankle deep in a gutter full of drifted thawing
snow,
between two low walls of metal that presently rose waist high. "I will
go
first," said the guide. Graham drew his cloak about him and
followed.
Then suddenly came a narrow abyss across which the gutter leapt to
the
snowy darkness of the further side. Graham peeped over the side once
and
the gulf was black. For a moment he regretted his flight. He dared
not
look again, and his brain spun as he waded through the half liquid
snow.
Then out of the gutter they clambered and hurried across a wide flat
space
damp with thawing snow, and for half its extent dimly translucent
to lights
that went to and fro underneath. He hesitated at this unstable
looking
substance, but his guide ran on unheeding, and so they came to
and clambered
up slippery steps to the rim of a great dome of glass.
Round this they went.
Far below a number of people seemed to be dancing,
and music filtered through
the dome.... Graham fancied he heard a
shouting through the snowstorm, and
his guide hurried him on with a new
spurt of haste. They clambered panting to
a space of huge windmills, one
so vast that only the lower edge of its vanes
came rushing into sight and
rushed up again and was lost in the night and the
snow. They hurried for
a time through the colossal metallic tracery of its
supports, and came at
last above a place of moving platforms like the place
into which Graham
had looked from the balcony. They crawled across the
sloping transparency
that covered this street of platforms, crawling on hands
and knees
because of the slipperiness of the snowfall.
For the most part the glass was bedewed, and Graham saw only
hazy
suggestions of the forms below, but near the pitch of the
transparent
roof the glass was clear, and he found himself looking sheerly
down
upon it all. For awhile, in spite of the urgency of his guide, he
gave
way to vertigo and lay spread-eagled on the glass, sick and
paralysed.
Far below, mere stirring specks and dots, went the people of
the
unsleeping city in their perpetual daylight, and the moving
platforms
ran on their incessant journey. Messengers and men on
unknown
businesses shot along the drooping cables and the frail bridges
were
crowded with men. It was like peering into a gigantic glass hive,
and
it lay vertically below him with only a tough glass of
unknown
thickness to save him from a fall. The street showed warm and lit,
and
Graham was wet now to the skin with thawing snow, and his feet
were
numbed with cold. For a space he could not move. "Come on!" cried
his
guide, with terror in his voice. "Come on!"
Graham reached the pitch of the roof by an effort.
Over the ridge, following his guide's example, he turned about and
slid
backward down the opposite slope very swiftly, amid a little avalanche
of
snow. While he was sliding he thought of what would happen if some
broken
gap should come in his way. At the edge he stumbled to his feet
ankle
deep in slush, thanking heaven for an opaque footing again. His guide
was
already clambering up a metal screen to a level expanse.
Through the spare snowflakes above this loomed another line of
vast
windmills, and then suddenly the amorphous tumult of the rotating
wheels
was pierced with a deafening sound. It was a mechanical shrilling
of
extraordinary intensity that seemed to come simultaneously from
every
point of the compass.
"They have missed us already!" cried Graham's guide in an accent
of
terror, and suddenly, with a blinding flash, the night became day.
Above the driving snow, from the summits of the wind-wheels, appeared
vast
masts carrying globes of livid light. They receded in illimitable
vistas in
every direction. As far as his eye could penetrate the snowfall
they
glared.
"Get on this," cried Graham's conductor, and thrust him forward to a
long
grating of snowless metal that ran like a band between two
slightly
sloping expanses of snow. It felt warm to Graham's benumbed feet,
and a
faint eddy of steam rose from it.
"Come on!" shouted his guide ten yards off, and, without waiting,
ran
swiftly through the incandescent glare towards the iron supports of
the
next range of wind-wheels. Graham, recovering from his
astonishment,
followed as fast, convinced of his imminent capture....
In a score of seconds they were within a tracery of glare and
black
shadows shot with moving bars beneath the monstrous wheels.
Graham's
conductor ran on for some time, and suddenly darted sideways and
vanished
into a black shadow in the corner of the foot of a huge support.
In
another moment Graham was beside him.
They cowered panting and stared out.
The scene upon which Graham looked was very wild and strange. The snow
had
now almost ceased; only a belated flake passed now and again across
the
picture. But the broad stretch of level before them was a ghastly
white,
broken only by gigantic masses and moving shapes and lengthy
strips of
impenetrable darkness, vast ungainly Titans of shadow. All
about them, huge
metallic structures, iron girders, inhumanly vast as it
seemed to him,
interlaced, and the edges of wind-wheels, scarcely moving
in the lull, passed
in great shining curves steeper and steeper up into a
luminous haze. Wherever
the snow-spangled light struck down, beams and
girders, and incessant bands
running with a halting, indomitable
resolution, passed upward and downward
into the black. And with all that
mighty activity, with an omnipresent sense
of motive and design, this
snow-clad desolation of mechanism seemed void of
all human presence save
themselves, seemed as trackless and deserted and
unfrequented by men as
some inaccessible Alpine snowfield.
"They will be chasing us," cried the leader. "We are scarcely
halfway
there yet. Cold as it is we must hide here for a space--at least
until it
snows more thickly again."
His teeth chattered in his head.
"Where are the markets?" asked Graham staring out. "Where are all
the
people?"
The other made no answer.
"_Look_!" whispered Graham, crouched close, and became very still.
The snow had suddenly become thick again, and sliding with the
whirling
eddies out of the black pit of the sky came something, vague and
large
and very swift. It came down in a steep curve and swept round, wide
wings
extended and a trail of white condensing steam behind it, rose with
an
easy swiftness and went gliding up the air, swept horizontally forward
in
a wide curve, and vanished again in the steaming specks of snow.
And,
through the ribs of its body, Graham saw two little men, very minute
and
active, searching the snowy areas about him, as it seemed to him,
with
field glasses. For a second they were clear, then hazy through a
thick
whirl of snow, then small and distant, and in a minute they were
gone.
"_Now_!" cried his companion. "Come!"
He pulled Graham's sleeve, and incontinently the two were running
headlong
down the arcade of iron-work beneath the wind-wheels. Graham,
running
blindly, collided with his leader, who had turned back on him
suddenly. He
found himself within a dozen yards of a black chasm. It
extended as far as he
could see right and left. It seemed to cut off
their progress in either
direction.
"Do as I do," whispered his guide. He lay down and crawled to the
edge,
thrust his head over and twisted until one leg hung. He seemed to
feel
for something with his foot, found it, and went sliding over the
edge
into the gulf. His head reappeared. "It is a ledge," he whispered.
"In
the dark all the way along. Do as I did."
Graham hesitated, went down upon all fours, crawled to the edge,
and
peered into a velvety blackness. For a sickly moment he had
courage
neither to go on nor retreat, then he sat and hung his leg down, felt
his
guide's hands pulling at him, had a horrible sensation of sliding
over
the edge into the unfathomable, splashed, and felt himself in a
slushy
gutter, impenetrably dark.
"This way," whispered the voice, and he began crawling along the
gutter
through the trickling thaw, pressing himself against the wall.
They
continued along it for some minutes. He seemed to pass through a
hundred
stages of misery, to pass minute after minute through a hundred
degrees
of cold, damp, and exhaustion. In a little while he ceased to feel
his
hands and feet.
The gutter sloped downwards. He observed that they were now many
feet
below the edge of the buildings. Rows of spectral white shapes like
the
ghosts of blind-drawn windows rose above them. They came to the end of
a
cable fastened above one of these white windows, dimly visible
and
dropping into impenetrable shadows. Suddenly his hand came against
his
guide's. "_Still_!" whispered the latter very softly.
He looked up with a start and saw the huge wings of the flying
machine
gliding slowly and noiselessly overhead athwart the broad band
of
snow-flecked grey-blue sky. In a moment it was hidden again.
"Keep still; they were just turning."
For awhile both were motionless, then Graham's companion stood up,
and
reaching towards the fastenings of the cable fumbled with
some
indistinct tackle.
"What is that?" asked Graham.
The only answer was a faint cry. The man crouched motionless.
Graham
peered and saw his face dimly. He was staring down the long ribbon
of
sky, and Graham, following his eyes, saw the flying machine small
and
faint and remote. Then he saw that the wings spread on either side,
that
it headed towards them, that every moment it grew larger. It
was
following the edge of the chasm towards them.
The man's movements became convulsive. He thrust two cross bars
into
Graham's hand. Graham could not see them, he ascertained their form
by
feeling. They were slung by thin cords to the cable. On the cord
were
hand grips of some soft elastic substance. "Put the cross between
your
legs," whispered the guide hysterically, "and grip the holdfasts.
Grip
tightly, grip!"
Graham did as he was told.
"Jump," said the voice. "In heaven's name, jump!"
For one momentous second Graham could not speak. He was glad
afterwards
that darkness hid his face. He said nothing. He began to
tremble
violently. He looked sideways at the swift shadow that swallowed up
the
sky as it rushed upon him.
"Jump! Jump--in God's name! Or they will have us," cried Graham's
guide,
and in the violence of his passion thrust him forward.
Graham tottered convulsively, gave a sobbing cry, a cry in spite
of
himself, and then, as the flying machine swept over them, fell
forward
into the pit of that darkness, seated on the cross wood and holding
the
ropes with the clutch of death. Something cracked, something
rapped
smartly against a wall. He heard the pulley of the cradle hum on
its
rope. He heard the aeronauts shout. He felt a pair of knees digging
into
his back.... He was sweeping headlong through the air, falling
through
the air. All his strength was in his hands. He would have screamed
but he
had no breath.
He shot into a blinding light that made him grip the tighter.
He
recognised the great passage with the running ways, the hanging
lights
and interlacing girders. They rushed upward and by him. He had
a
momentary impression of a great round mouth yawning to swallow him up.
He was in the dark again, falling, falling, gripping with aching
hands,
and behold! a clap of sound, a burst of light, and he was in a
brightly
lit hall with a roaring multitude of people beneath his feet. The
people!
His people! A proscenium, a stage rushed up towards him, and his
cable
swept down to a circular aperture to the right of this. He felt he
was
travelling slower, and suddenly very much slower. He distinguished
shouts
of "Saved! The Master. He is safe!" The stage rushed up towards him
with
rapidly diminishing swiftness. Then--
He heard the man clinging behind him shout as if suddenly terrified,
and
this shout was echoed by a shout from below. He felt that he was
no
longer gliding along the cable but falling with it. There was a tumult
of
yells, screams, and cries. He felt something soft against his
extended
hand, and the impact of a broken fall quivering through his
arm....
He wanted to be still and the people were lifting him. He
believed
afterwards he was carried to the platform and given some drink, but
he
was never sure. He did not notice what became of his guide. When his
mind
was clear again he was on his feet; eager hands were assisting him
to
stand. He was in a big alcove, occupying the position that in
his
previous experience had been devoted to the lower boxes. If this
was
indeed a theatre.
A mighty tumult was in his ears, a thunderous roar, the shouting of
a
countless multitude. "It is the Sleeper! The Sleeper is with us!"
"The Sleeper is with us! The Master--the Owner! The Master is with us.
He
is safe."
Graham had a surging vision of a great hall crowded with people. He saw
no
individuals, he was conscious of a froth of pink faces, of waving arms
and
garments, he felt the occult influence of a vast crowd pouring over
him,
buoying him up. There were balconies, galleries, great archways
giving
remoter perspectives, and everywhere people, a vast arena of
people, densely
packed and cheering. Across the nearer space lay the
collapsed cable like a
huge snake. It had been cut by the men of the
flying machine at its upper
end, and had crumpled down into the hall. Men
seemed to be hauling this out
of the way. But the whole effect was vague,
the very buildings throbbed and
leapt with the roar of the voices.
He stood unsteadily and looked at those about him. Someone supported
him
by one arm. "Let me go into a little room," he said, weeping; "a
little
room," and could say no more. A man in black stepped forward, took
his
disengaged arm. He was aware of officious men opening a door before
him.
Someone guided him to a seat. He staggered. He sat down heavily
and
covered his face with his hands; he was trembling violently, his
nervous
control was at an end. He was relieved of his cloak, he could
not
remember how; his purple hose he saw were black with wet. People
were
running about him, things were happening, but for some time he gave
no
heed to them.
He had escaped. A myriad of cries told him that. He was safe. These
were
the people who were on his side. For a space he sobbed for breath,
and
then he sat still with his face covered. The air was full of the
shouting
of innumerable men.
CHAPTER IX
THE PEOPLE MARCH
He became aware of someone urging a glass of clear fluid upon
his
attention, looked up and discovered this was a dark young man in a
yellow
garment. He took the dose forthwith, and in a moment he was glowing.
A
tall man in a black robe stood by his shoulder, and pointed to the
half
open door into the hall. This man was shouting close to his ear and
yet
what was said was indistinct because of the tremendous uproar from
the
great theatre. Behind the man was a girl in a silvery grey robe,
whom
Graham, even in this confusion, perceived to be beautiful. Her dark
eyes,
full of wonder and curiosity, were fixed on him, her lips trembled
apart.
A partially opened door gave a glimpse of the crowded hall, and
admitted
a vast uneven tumult, a hammering, clapping and shouting that died
away
and began again, and rose to a thunderous pitch, and so
continued
intermittently all the time that Graham remained in the little
room. He
watched the lips of the man in black and gathered that he was making
some
explanation.
He stared stupidly for some moments at these things and then stood
up
abruptly; he grasped the arm of this shouting person.
"Tell me!" he cried. "Who am I? Who am I?"
The others came nearer to hear his words. "Who am I?" His eyes
searched
their faces.
"They have told him nothing!" cried the girl.
"Tell me, tell me!" cried Graham.
"You are the Master of the Earth. You are owner of the world."
He did not believe he heard aright. He resisted the persuasion.
He
pretended not to understand, not to hear. He lifted his voice again.
"I
have been awake three days--a prisoner three days. I judge there is
some
struggle between a number of people in this city--it is London?"
"Yes," said the younger man.
"And those who meet in the great hall with the white Atlas? How does
it
concern me? In some way it has to do with me. _Why_, I don't know.
Drugs?
It seems to me that while I have slept the world has gone mad. I
have
gone mad.... Who are those Councillors under the Atlas? Why should
they
try to drug me?"
"To keep you insensible," said the man in yellow. "To prevent
your
interference."
"But _why_?"
"Because _you_ are the Atlas, Sire," said the man in yellow. "The world
is
on your shoulders. They rule it in your name."
The sounds from the hall had died into a silence threaded by
one
monotonous voice. Now suddenly, trampling on these last words, came
a
deafening tumult, a roaring and thundering, cheer crowded on
cheer,
voices hoarse and shrill, beating, overlapping, and while it lasted
the
people in the little room could not hear each other shout.
Graham stood, his intelligence clinging helplessly to the thing he
had
just heard. "The Council," he repeated blankly, and then snatched at
a
name that had struck him. "But who is Ostrog?" he said.
"He is the organiser--the organiser of the revolt. Our Leader--in
your
name."
"In my name?--And you? Why is he not here?"
"He--has deputed us. I am his brother--his half-brother, Lincoln. He
wants
you to show yourself to these people and then come on to him. That
is why he
has sent. He is at the wind-vane offices directing. The people
are
marching."
"In your name," shouted the younger man. "They have ruled,
crushed,
tyrannised. At last even--"
"In my name! My name! Master?"
The younger man suddenly became audible in a pause of the outer
thunder,
indignant and vociferous, a high penetrating voice under his
red
aquiline nose and bushy moustache. "No one expected you to wake. No
one
expected you to wake. They were cunning. Damned tyrants! But they
were
taken by surprise. They did not know whether to drug you, hypnotise
you,
kill you."
Again the hall dominated everything.
"Ostrog is at the wind-vane offices ready--. Even now there is a rumour
of
fighting beginning."
The man who had called himself Lincoln came close to him. "Ostrog has
it
planned. Trust him. We have our organisations ready. We shall seize
the
flying stages--. Even now he may be doing that. Then--"
"This public theatre," bawled the man in yellow, "is only a contingent.
We
have five myriads of drilled men--"
"We have arms," cried Lincoln. "We have plans. A leader. Their police
have
gone from the streets and are massed in the--" (inaudible). "It is
now or
never. The Council is rocking--They cannot trust even their
drilled
men--"
"Hear the people calling to you!"
Graham's mind was like a night of moon and swift clouds, now dark
and
hopeless, now clear and ghastly. He was Master of the Earth, he was a
man
sodden with thawing snow. Of all his fluctuating impressions the
dominant
ones presented an antagonism; on the one hand was the White
Council,
powerful, disciplined, few, the White Council from which he had
just
escaped; and on the other, monstrous crowds, packed masses
of
indistinguishable people clamouring his name, hailing him Master.
The
other side had imprisoned him, debated his death. These
shouting
thousands beyond the little doorway had rescued him. But why these
things
should be so he could not understand.
The door opened, Lincoln's voice was swept away and drowned, and a rash
of
people followed on the heels of the tumult. These intruders came
towards him
and Lincoln gesticulating. The voices without explained their
soundless lips.
"Show us the Sleeper, show us the Sleeper!" was the
burden of the uproar. Men
were bawling for "Order! Silence!"
Graham glanced towards the open doorway, and saw a tall, oblong picture
of
the hall beyond, a waving, incessant confusion of crowded, shouting
faces,
men and women together, waving pale blue garments, extended hands.
Many were
standing, one man in rags of dark brown, a gaunt figure, stood
on the seat
and waved a black cloth. He met the wonder and expectation of
the girl's
eyes. What did these people expect from him. He was dimly
aware that the
tumult outside had changed its character, was in some way
beating, marching.
His own mind, too, changed. For a space he did not
recognise the influence
that was transforming him. But a moment that was
near to panic passed. He
tried to make audible inquiries of what was
required of him.
Lincoln was shouting in his ear, but Graham was deafened to that. All
the
others save the woman gesticulated towards the hall. He perceived
what
had happened to the uproar. The whole mass of people was
chanting
together. It was not simply a song, the voices were gathered
together and
upborne by a torrent of instrumental music, music like the music
of an
organ, a woven texture of sounds, full of trumpets, full of
flaunting
banners, full of the march and pageantry of opening war. And the
feet of
the people were beating time--tramp, tramp.
He was urged towards the door. He obeyed mechanically. The strength
of
that chant took hold of him, stirred him, emboldened him. The hall
opened
to him, a vast welter of fluttering colour swaying to the music.
"Wave your arm to them," said Lincoln. "Wave your arm to them."
"This," said a voice on the other side, "he must have this." Arms
were
about his neck detaining him in the doorway, and a
black
subtly-folding mantle hung from his shoulders. He threw his arm
free
of this and followed Lincoln. He perceived the girl in grey close
to
him, her face lit, her gesture onward. For the instant she became
to
him, flushed and eager as she was, an embodiment of the song.
He
emerged in the alcove again. Incontinently the mounting waves of
the
song broke upon his appearing, and flashed up into a foam of
shouting.
Guided by Lincoln's hand he marched obliquely across the centre of
the
stage facing the people.
The hall was a vast and intricate space--galleries, balconies,
broad
spaces of amphitheatral steps, and great archways. Far away, high
up,
seemed the mouth of a huge passage full of struggling humanity. The
whole
multitude was swaying in congested masses. Individual figures sprang
out
of the tumult, impressed him momentarily, and lost definition
again.
Close to the platform swayed a beautiful fair woman, carried by
three
men, her hair across her face and brandishing a green staff. Next
this
group an old careworn man in blue canvas maintained his place in
the
crush with difficulty, and behind shouted a hairless face, a great
cavity
of toothless mouth. A voice called that enigmatical word "Ostrog."
All
his impressions were vague save the massive emotion of that
trampling
song. The multitude were beating time with their feet--marking
time,
tramp, tramp, tramp, tramp. The green weapons waved, flashed and
slanted.
Then he saw those nearest to him on a level space before the stage
were
marching in front of him, passing towards a great archway, shouting
"To
the Council!" Tramp, tramp, tramp, tramp. He raised his arm, and
the
roaring was redoubled. He remembered he had to shout "March!" His
mouth
shaped inaudible heroic words. He waved his arm again and pointed to
the
archway, shouting "Onward!" They were no longer marking time, they
were
marching; tramp, tramp, tramp, tramp. In that host were bearded men,
old
men, youths, fluttering robed bare-armed women, girls. Men and women
of
the new age! Rich robes, grey rags fluttered together in the whirl
of
their movement amidst the dominant blue. A monstrous black banner
jerked
its way to the right. He perceived a blue-clad negro, a shrivelled
woman
in yellow, then a group of tall fair-haired, white-faced, blue-clad
men
pushed theatrically past him. He noted two Chinamen. A tall,
sallow,
dark-haired, shining-eyed youth, white clad from top to toe,
clambered up
towards the platform shouting loyally, and sprang down again and
receded,
looking backward. Heads, shoulders, hands clutching weapons, all
were
swinging with those marching cadences.
Faces came out of the confusion to him as he stood there, eyes met his
and
passed and vanished. Men gesticulated to him, shouted inaudible
personal
things. Most of the faces were flushed, but many were ghastly
white. And
disease was there, and many a hand that waved to him was gaunt
and lean. Men
and women of the new age! Strange and incredible meeting!
As the broad stream
passed before him to the right, tributary gangways
from the remote uplands of
the hall thrust downward in an incessant
replacement of people; tramp, tramp,
tramp, tramp. The unison of the song
was enriched and complicated by the
massive echoes of arches and
passages. Men and women mingled in the ranks;
tramp, tramp, tramp, tramp.
The whole world seemed marching. Tramp, tramp,
tramp, tramp; his brain
was tramping. The garments waved onward, the faces
poured by more
abundantly.
Tramp, tramp, tramp, tramp; at Lincoln's pressure he turned towards
the
archway, walking unconsciously in that rhythm, scarcely noticing
his
movement for the melody and stir of it. The multitude, the gesture
and
song, all moved in that direction, the flow of people smote
downward
until the upturned faces were below the level of his feet. He was
aware
of a path before him, of a suite about him, of guards and dignities,
and
Lincoln on his right hand. Attendants intervened, and ever and
again
blotted out the sight of the multitude to the left. Before him went
the
backs of the guards in black--three and three and three. He was
marched
along a little railed way, and crossed above the archway, with
the
torrent dipping to flow beneath, and shouting up to him. He did not
know
whither he went; he did not want to know. He glanced back across
a
flaming spaciousness of hall. Tramp, tramp, tramp, tramp.
CHAPTER X
THE BATTLE OF THE DARKNESS
He was no longer in the hall. He was marching along a gallery
overhanging
one of the great streets of the moving platforms that traversed
the city.
Before him and behind him tramped his guards. The whole concave of
the
moving ways below was a congested mass of people marching, tramping
to
the left, shouting, waving hands and arms, pouring along a huge
vista,
shouting as they came into view, shouting as they passed, shouting
as
they receded, until the globes of electric light receding in
perspective
dropped down it seemed and hid the swarming bare heads. Tramp,
tramp,
tramp, tramp.
The song roared up to Graham now, no longer upborne by music, but
coarse
and noisy, and the beating of the marching feet, tramp, tramp,
tramp,
tramp, interwove with a thunderous irregularity of footsteps from
the
undisciplined rabble that poured along the higher ways.
Abruptly he noted a contrast. The buildings on the opposite side of
the
way seemed deserted, the cables and bridges that laced across the
aisle
were empty and shadowy. It came into Graham's mind that these also
should
have swarmed with people.
He felt a curious emotion--throbbing--very fast! He stopped again.
The
guards before him marched on; those about him stopped as he did. He
saw
anxiety and fear in their faces. The throbbing had something to do
with
the lights. He too looked up.
At first it seemed to him a thing that affected the lights simply,
an
isolated phenomenon, having no bearing on the things below. Each
huge
globe of blinding whiteness was as it were clutched, compressed in
a
systole that was followed by a transitory diastole, and again a
systole
like a tightening grip, darkness, light, darkness, in rapid
alternation.
Graham became aware that this strange behaviour of the lights had to
do
with the people below. The appearance of the houses and ways,
the
appearance of the packed masses changed, became a confusion of
vivid
lights and leaping shadows. He saw a multitude of shadows had sprung
into
aggressive existence, seemed rushing up, broadening, widening,
growing
with steady swiftness--to leap suddenly back and return reinforced.
The
song and the tramping had ceased. The unanimous march, he discovered,
was
arrested, there were eddies, a flow sideways, shouts of "The
lights!"
Voices were crying together one thing. "The lights!" cried these
voices.
"The lights!" He looked down. In this dancing death of the lights
the
area of the street had suddenly become a monstrous struggle. The
huge
white globes became purple-white, purple with a reddish glow,
flickered,
flickered faster and faster, fluttered between light and
extinction,
ceased to flicker and became mere fading specks of glowing red in
a vast
obscurity. In ten seconds the extinction was accomplished, and there
was
only this roaring darkness, a black monstrosity that had
suddenly
swallowed up those glittering myriads of men.
He felt invisible forms about him; his arms were gripped. Something
rapped
sharply against his shin. A voice bawled in his ear, "It is all
right--all
right."
Graham shook off the paralysis of his first astonishment. He struck
his
forehead against Lincoln's and bawled, "What is this darkness?"
"The Council has cut the currents that light the city. We must
wait--stop.
The people will go on. They will--"
His voice was drowned. Voices were shouting, "Save the Sleeper. Take
care
of the Sleeper." A guard stumbled against Graham and hurt his hand by
an
inadvertent blow of his weapon. A wild tumult tossed and whirled
about
him, growing, as it seemed, louder, denser, more furious each
moment.
Fragments of recognisable sounds drove towards him, were whirled
away
from him as his mind reached out to grasp them. Voices seemed to
be
shouting conflicting orders, other voices answered. There were suddenly
a
succession of piercing screams close beneath them.
A voice bawled in his ear, "The red police," and receded forthwith
beyond
his questions.
A crackling sound grew to distinctness, and therewith a leaping of
faint
flashes along the edge of the further ways. By their light Graham saw
the
heads and bodies of a number of men, armed with weapons like those of
his
guards, leap into an instant's dim visibility. The whole area began
to
crackle, to flash with little instantaneous streaks of light,
and
abruptly the darkness rolled back like a curtain.
A glare of light dazzled his eyes, a vast seething expanse of
struggling
men confused his mind. A shout, a burst of cheering, came across
the
ways. He looked up to see the source of the light. A man hung
far
overhead from the upper part of a cable, holding by a rope the
blinding
star that had driven the darkness back.
Graham's eyes fell to the ways again. A wedge of red a little way
along
the vista caught his eye. He saw it was a dense mass of red-clad
men jammed
on the higher further way, their backs against the pitiless
cliff of
building, and surrounded by a dense crowd of antagonists.
They were fighting.
Weapons flashed and rose and fell, heads vanished
at the edge of the contest,
and other heads replaced them, the little
flashes from the green weapons
became little jets of smoky grey while
the light lasted.
Abruptly the flare was extinguished and the ways were an inky
darkness
once more, a tumultuous mystery.
He felt something thrusting against him. He was being pushed along
the
gallery. Someone was shouting--it might be at him. He was too
confused
to hear. He was thrust against the wall, and a number of
people
blundered past him. It seemed to him that his guards were
struggling
with one another.
Suddenly the cable-hung star-holder appeared again, and the whole
scene
was white and dazzling. The band of red-coats seemed broader and
nearer;
its apex was half-way down the ways towards the central aisle.
And
raising his eyes Graham saw that a number of these men had also
appeared
now in the darkened lower galleries of the opposite building, and
were
firing over the heads of their fellows below at the boiling confusion
of
people on the lower ways. The meaning of these things dawned upon
him.
The march of the people had come upon an ambush at the very
outset.
Thrown into confusion by the extinction of the lights they were now
being
attacked by the red police. Then he became aware that he was
standing
alone, that his guards and Lincoln were along the gallery in
the
direction along which he had come before the darkness fell. He saw
they
were gesticulating to him wildly, running back towards him. A
great
shouting came from across the ways. Then it seemed as though the
whole
face of the darkened building opposite was lined and speckled
with
red-clad men. And they were pointing over to him and shouting.
"The
Sleeper! Save the Sleeper!" shouted a multitude of throats.
Something struck the wall above his head. He looked up at the impact
and
saw a star-shaped splash of silvery metal. He saw Lincoln near him.
Felt
his arm gripped. Then, pat, pat; he had been missed twice.
For a moment he did not understand this. The street was hidden,
everything
was hidden, as he looked. The second flare had burned out.
Lincoln had gripped Graham by the arm, was lugging him along the
gallery.
"Before the next light!" he cried. His haste was contagious.
Graham's
instinct of self-preservation overcame the paralysis of his
incredulous
astonishment. He became for a time the blind creature of the fear
of
death. He ran, stumbling because of the uncertainty of the
darkness,
blundered into his guards as they turned to run with him. Haste was
his
one desire, to escape this perilous gallery upon which he was exposed.
A
third glare came close on its predecessors. With it came a great
shouting
across the ways, an answering tumult from the ways. The red-coats
below,
he saw, had now almost gained the central passage. Their countless
faces
turned towards him, and they shouted. The white façade opposite
was
densely stippled with red. All these wonderful things concerned
him,
turned upon him as a pivot. These were the guards of the
Council
attempting to recapture him.
Lucky it was for him that these shots were the first fired in anger for
a
hundred and fifty years. He heard bullets whacking over his head, felt
a
splash of molten metal sting his ear, and perceived without looking
that the
whole opposite façade, an unmasked ambuscade of red police, was
crowded and
bawling and firing at him.
Down went one of his guards before him, and Graham, unable to stop,
leapt
the writhing body.
In another second he had plunged, unhurt, into a black passage,
and
incontinently someone, coming, it may be, in a transverse
direction,
blundered violently into him. He was hurling down a staircase in
absolute
darkness. He reeled, and was struck again, and came against a wall
with
his hands. He was crushed by a weight of struggling bodies,
whirled
round, and thrust to the right. A vast pressure pinned him. He could
not
breathe, his ribs seemed cracking. He felt a momentary relaxation,
and
then the whole mass of people moving together, bore him back towards
the
great theatre from which he had so recently come. There were moments
when
his feet did not touch the ground. Then he was staggering and shoving.
He
heard shouts of "They are coming!" and a muffled cry close to him.
His
foot blundered against something soft, he heard a hoarse scream
under
foot. He heard shouts of "The Sleeper!" but he was too confused to
speak.
He heard the green weapons crackling. For a space he lost his
individual
will, became an atom in a panic, blind, unthinking, mechanical. He
thrust
and pressed back and writhed in the pressure, kicked presently against
a
step, and found himself ascending a slope. And abruptly the faces
all
about him leapt out of the black, visible, ghastly-white and
astonished,
terrified, perspiring, in a livid glare. One face, a young man's,
was
very near to him, not twenty inches away. At the time it was but
a
passing incident of no emotional value, but afterwards it came back
to
him in his dreams. For this young man, wedged upright in the crowd for
a
time, had been shot and was already dead.
A fourth white star must have been lit by the man on the cable. Its
light
came glaring in through vast windows and arches and showed Graham
that he was
now one of a dense mass of flying black figures pressed back
across the lower
area of the great theatre. This time the picture was
livid and fragmentary,
slashed and barred with black shadows. He saw
that quite near to him the red
guards were fighting their way through
the people. He could not tell whether
they saw him. He looked for
Lincoln and his guards. He saw Lincoln near the
stage of the theatre
surrounded in a crowd of black-badged revolutionaries,
lifted up and
staring to and fro as if seeking him. Graham perceived that he
himself
was near the opposite edge of the crowd, that behind him, separated
by a
barrier, sloped the now vacant seats of the theatre. A sudden idea
came
to him, and he began fighting his way towards the barrier. As he
reached
it the glare came to an end.
In a moment he had thrown off the great cloak that not only impeded
his
movements but made him conspicuous, and had slipped it from
his
shoulders. He heard someone trip in its folds. In another he was
scaling
the barrier and had dropped into the blackness on the further side.
Then
feeling his way he came to the lower end of an ascending gangway. In
the
darkness the sound of firing ceased and the roar of feet and
voices
lulled. Then suddenly he came to an unexpected step and tripped and
fell.
As he did so pools and islands amidst the darkness about him leapt
to
vivid light again, the uproar surged louder and the glare of the
fifth
white star shone through the vast fenestrations of the theatre
walls.
He rolled over among some seats, heard a shouting and the whirring
rattle
of weapons, struggled up and was knocked back again, perceived that
a
number of black-badged men were all about him firing at the reds
below,
leaping from seat to seat, crouching among the seats to
reload.
Instinctively he crouched amidst the seats, as stray shots ripped
the
pneumatic cushions and cut bright slashes on their soft metal
frames.
Instinctively he marked the direction of the gangways, the most
plausible
way of escape for him so soon as the veil of darkness fell
again.
A young man in faded blue garments came vaulting over the seats.
"Hullo!"
he said, with his flying feet within six inches of the
crouching
Sleeper's face.
He stared without any sign of recognition, turned to fire, fired,
and
shouting, "To hell with the Council!" was about to fire again. Then
it
seemed to Graham that the half of this man's neck had vanished. A drop
of
moisture fell on Graham's cheek. The green weapon stopped half
raised.
For a moment the man stood still with his face suddenly
expressionless,
then he began to slant forward. His knees bent. Man and
darkness fell
together. At the sound of his fall Graham rose up and ran for
his life
until a step down to the gangway tripped him. He scrambled to his
feet,
turned up the gangway and ran on.
When the sixth star glared he was already close to the yawning throat of
a
passage. He ran on the swifter for the light, entered the passage and
turned
a corner into absolute night again. He was knocked sideways,
rolled over, and
recovered his feet. He found himself one of a crowd of
invisible fugitives
pressing in one direction. His one thought now was
their thought also; to
escape out of this fighting. He thrust and struck,
staggered, ran, was wedged
tightly, lost ground and then was clear again.
For some minutes he was running through the darkness along a
winding
passage, and then he crossed some wide and open space, passed down a
long
incline, and came at last down a flight of steps to a level place.
Many
people were shouting, "They are coming! The guards are coming. They
are
firing. Get out of the fighting. The guards are firing. It will be
safe
in Seventh Way. Along here to Seventh Way!" There were women and
children
in the crowd as well as men.
The crowd converged on an archway, passed through a short throat
and
emerged on a wider space again, lit dimly. The black figures about
him
spread out and ran up what seemed in the twilight to be a gigantic
series
of steps. He followed. The people dispersed to the right and left....
He
perceived that he was no longer in a crowd. He stopped near the
highest
step. Before him, on that level, were groups of seats and a little
kiosk.
He went up to this and, stopping in the shadow of its eaves, looked
about
him panting.
Everything was vague and grey, but he recognised that these great
steps
were a series of platforms of the "ways," now motionless again.
The
platform slanted up on either side, and the tall buildings rose
beyond,
vast dim ghosts, their inscriptions and advertisements indistinctly
seen,
and up through the girders and cables was a faint interrupted ribbon
of
pallid sky. A number of people hurried by. From their shouts and
voices,
it seemed they were hurrying to join the fighting. Other less
noisy
figures flitted timidly among the shadows.
From very far away down the street he could hear the sound of a
struggle.
But it was evident to him that this was not the street into which
the
theatre opened. That former fight, it seemed, had suddenly dropped out
of
sound and hearing. And they were fighting for him!
For a space he was like a man who pauses in the reading of a vivid
book,
and suddenly doubts what he has been taking unquestionably. At that
time
he had little mind for details; the whole effect was a huge
astonishment.
Oddly enough, while the flight from the Council prison, the
great crowd
in the hall, and the attack of the red police upon the swarming
people
were clearly present in his mind, it cost him an effort to piece in
his
awakening and to revive the meditative interval of the Silent Rooms.
At
first his memory leapt these things and took him back to the cascade
at
Pentargen quivering in the wind, and all the sombre splendours of
the
sunlit Cornish coast. The contrast touched everything with unreality.
And
then the gap filled, and he began to comprehend his position.
It was no longer absolutely a riddle, as it had been in the Silent
Rooms.
At least he had the strange, bare outline now. He was in some way
the
owner of the world, and great political parties were fighting to
possess
him. On the one hand was the Council, with its red police,
set
resolutely, it seemed, on the usurpation of his property and perhaps
his
murder; on the other, the revolution that had liberated him, with
this
unseen "Ostrog" as its leader. And the whole of this gigantic city
was
convulsed by their struggle. Frantic development of his world! "I do
not
understand," he cried. "I do not understand!"
He had slipped out between the contending parties into this liberty of
the
twilight. What would happen next? What was happening? He figured the
red-clad
men as busily hunting him, driving the black-badged
revolutionists before
them.
At any rate chance had given him a breathing space. He could
lurk
unchallenged by the passers-by, and watch the course of things. His
eye
followed up the intricate dim immensity of the twilight buildings, and
it
came to him as a thing infinitely wonderful, that above there the sun
was
rising, and the world was lit and glowing with the old familiar light
of
day. In a little while he had recovered his breath. His clothing
had
already dried upon him from the snow.
He wandered for miles along these twilight ways, speaking to no
one,
accosted by no one--a dark figure among dark figures--the coveted man
out
of the past, the inestimable unintentional owner of the world.
Wherever
there were lights or dense crowds, or exceptional excitement, he
was
afraid of recognition, and watched and turned back or went up and down
by
the middle stairways, into some transverse system of ways at a lower
or
higher level. And though he came on no more fighting, the whole
city
stirred with battle. Once he had to run to avoid a marching multitude
of
men that swept the street. Everyone abroad seemed involved. For the
most
part they were men, and they carried what he judged were weapons.
It
seemed as though the struggle was concentrated mainly in the quarter
of
the city from which he came. Ever and again a distant roaring,
the
remote suggestion of that conflict, reached his ears. Then his
caution
and his curiosity struggled together. But his caution prevailed, and
he
continued wandering away from the fighting--so far as he could judge.
He
went unmolested, unsuspected through the dark. After a time he ceased
to
hear even a remote echo of the battle, fewer and fewer people passed
him,
until at last the streets became deserted. The frontages of the
buildings
grew plain, and harsh; he seemed to have come to a district of
vacant
warehouses. Solitude crept upon him--his pace slackened.
He became aware of a growing fatigue. At times he would turn aside and
sit
down on one of the numerous benches of the upper ways. But a
feverish
restlessness, the knowledge of his vital implication in this
struggle,
would not let him rest in any place for long. Was the struggle on
his
behalf alone?
And then in a desolate place came the shock of an earthquake--a
roaring
and thundering--a mighty wind of cold air pouring through the city,
the
smash of glass, the slip and thud of falling masonry--a series
of
gigantic concussions. A mass of glass and ironwork fell from the
remote
roofs into the middle gallery, not a hundred yards away from him, and
in
the distance were shouts and running. He, too, was startled to an
aimless
activity, and ran first one way and then as aimlessly back.
A man came running towards him. His self-control returned. "What have
they
blown up?" asked the man breathlessly. "That was an explosion," and
before
Graham could speak he had hurried on.
The great buildings rose dimly, veiled by a perplexing twilight,
albeit
the rivulet of sky above was now bright with day. He noted many
strange
features, understanding none at the time; he even spelt out many of
the
inscriptions in Phonetic lettering. But what profit is it to decipher
a
confusion of odd-looking letters resolving itself, after painful
strain
of eye and mind, into "Here is Eadhamite," or, "Labour
Bureau--Little
Side"? Grotesque thought, that all these cliff-like houses
were his!
The perversity of his experience came to him vividly. In actual fact
he
had made such a leap in time as romancers have imagined again and
again.
And that fact realised, he had been prepared. His mind had, as it
were,
seated itself for a spectacle. And no spectacle unfolded itself, but
a
great vague danger, unsympathetic shadows and veils of
darkness.
Somewhere through the labyrinthine obscurity his death sought him.
Would
he, after all, be killed before he saw? It might be that even at the
next
corner his destruction ambushed. A great desire to see, a great
longing
to know, arose in him.
He became fearful of corners. It seemed to him that there was safety
in
concealment. Where could he hide to be inconspicuous when the
lights
returned? At last he sat down upon a seat in a recess on one of
the
higher ways, conceiving he was alone there.
He squeezed his knuckles into his weary eyes. Suppose when he looked
again
he found the dark trough of parallel ways and that intolerable
altitude of
edifice gone. Suppose he were to discover the whole story of
these last few
days, the awakening, the shouting multitudes, the darkness
and the fighting,
a phantasmagoria, a new and more vivid sort of dream.
It must be a dream; it
was so inconsecutive, so reasonless. Why were the
people fighting for him?
Why should this saner world regard him as Owner
and Master?
So he thought, sitting blinded, and then he looked again, half hoping
in
spite of his ears to see some familiar aspect of the life of
the
nineteenth century, to see, perhaps, the little harbour of
Boscastle
about him, the cliffs of Pentargen, or the bedroom of his home. But
fact
takes no heed of human hopes. A squad of men with a black banner
tramped
athwart the nearer shadows, intent on conflict, and beyond rose
that
giddy wall of frontage, vast and dark, with the dim
incomprehensible
lettering showing faintly on its face.
"It is no dream," he said, "no dream." And he bowed his face upon
his
hands.
CHAPTER XI
THE OLD MAN WHO KNEW EVERYTHING
He was startled by a cough close at hand.
He turned sharply, and peering, saw a small, hunched-up figure sitting
a
couple of yards off in the shadow of the enclosure.
"Have ye any news?" asked the high-pitched wheezy voice of a very
old
man.
Graham hesitated. "None," he said.
"I stay here till the lights come again," said the old man. "These
blue
scoundrels are everywhere--everywhere."
Graham's answer was inarticulate assent. He tried to see the old man
but
the darkness hid his face. He wanted very much to respond, to talk,
but
he did not know how to begin.
"Dark and damnable," said the old man suddenly. "Dark and damnable.
Turned
out of my room among all these dangers."
"That's hard," ventured Graham. "That's hard on you."
"Darkness. An old man lost in the darkness. And all the world gone
mad.
War and fighting. The police beaten and rogues abroad. Why don't
they
bring some negroes to protect us? ... No more dark passages for me.
I
fell over a dead man."
"You're safer with company," said the old man, "if it's company of
the
right sort," and peered frankly. He rose suddenly and came
towards
Graham.
Apparently the scrutiny was satisfactory. The old man sat down as
if
relieved to be no longer alone. "Eh!" he said, "but this is a
terrible
time! War and fighting, and the dead lying there--men, strong men,
dying
in the dark. Sons! I have three sons. God knows where they are
to-night."
The voice ceased. Then repeated quavering: "God knows where they
are
to-night."
Graham stood revolving a question that should not betray his
ignorance.
Again the old man's voice ended the pause.
"This Ostrog will win," he said. "He will win. And what the world will
be
like under him no one can tell. My sons are under the wind-vanes,
all three.
One of my daughters-in-law was his mistress for a while.
His mistress! We're
not common people. Though they've sent me to
wander to-night and take my
chance.... I knew what was going on.
Before most people. But this darkness!
And to fall over a dead body
suddenly in the dark!"
His wheezy breathing could be heard.
"Ostrog!" said Graham.
"The greatest Boss the world has ever seen," said the voice.
Graham ransacked his mind. "The Council has few friends among the
people,"
he hazarded.
"Few friends. And poor ones at that. They've had their time. Eh!
They
should have kept to the clever ones. But twice they held election.
And
Ostrog--. And now it has burst out and nothing can stay it, nothing
can
stay it. Twice they rejected Ostrog--Ostrog the Boss. I heard of
his
rages at the time--he was terrible. Heaven save them! For nothing
on
earth can now he has raised the Labour Companies upon them. No one
else
would have dared. All the blue canvas armed and marching! He will
go
through with it. He will go through."
He was silent for a little while. "This Sleeper," he said, and stopped.
"Yes," said Graham. "Well?"
The senile voice sank to a confidential whisper, the dim, pale face
came
close. "The real Sleeper--"
"Yes," said Graham.
"Died years ago."
"What?" said Graham, sharply.
"Years ago. Died. Years ago."
"You don't say so!" said Graham.
"I do. I do say so. He died. This Sleeper who's woke up--they changed
in
the night. A poor, drugged insensible creature. But I mustn't tell all
I
know. I mustn't tell all I know."
For a little while he muttered inaudibly. His secret was too much for
him.
"I don't know the ones that put him to sleep--that was before my
time--but I
know the man who injected the stimulants and woke him again.
It was ten to
one--wake or kill. Wake or kill. Ostrog's way."
Graham was so astonished at these things that he had to interrupt, to
make
the old man repeat his words, to re-question vaguely, before he was
sure of
the meaning and folly of what he heard. And his awakening had
not been
natural! Was that an old man's senile superstition, too, or had
it any truth
in it? Feeling in the dark corners of his memory, he
presently came on
something that might conceivably be an impression of
some such stimulating
effect. It dawned upon him that he had happened
upon a lucky encounter, that
at last he might learn something of the new
age. The old man wheezed awhile
and spat, and then the piping,
reminiscent voice resumed:
"The first time they rejected him. I've followed it all."
"Rejected whom?" said Graham. "The Sleeper?"
"Sleeper? _No_. Ostrog. He was terrible--terrible! And he was
promised
then, promised certainly the next time. Fools they were--not to be
more
afraid of him. Now all the city's his millstone, and such as we
dust
ground upon it. Dust ground upon it. Until he set to work--the
workers
cut each other's throats, and murdered a Chinaman or a Labour
policeman
at times, and left the rest of us in peace. Dead bodies!
Robbing!
Darkness! Such a thing hasn't been this gross of years. Eh!--but
'tis ill
on small folks when the great fall out! It's ill."
"Did you say--there had not been--what?--for a gross of years?"
"Eh?" said the old man.
The old man said something about clipping his words, and made him
repeat
this a third time. "Fighting and slaying, and weapons in hand, and
fools
bawling freedom and the like," said the old man. "Not in all my life
has
there been that. These are like the old days--for sure--when the
Paris
people broke out--three gross of years ago. That's what I mean
hasn't
been. But it's the world's way. It had to come back. I know. I know.
This
five years Ostrog has been working, and there has been trouble
and
trouble, and hunger and threats and high talk and arms. Blue canvas
and
murmurs. No one safe. Everything sliding and slipping. And now here
we
are! Revolt and fighting, and the Council come to its end."
"You are rather well-informed on these things," said Graham.
"I know what I hear. It isn't all Babble Machine with me."
"No," said Graham, wondering what Babble Machine might be. "And you
are
certain this Ostrog--you are certain Ostrog organised this rebellion
and
arranged for the waking of the Sleeper? Just to assert
himself--because
he was not elected to the Council?"
"Everyone knows that, I should think," said the old man.
"Except--just
fools. He meant to be master somehow. In the Council or not.
Everyone who
knows anything knows that. And here we are with dead bodies
lying in the
dark! Why, where have you been if you haven't heard all about
the trouble
between Ostrog and the Verneys? And what do you think the
troubles are
about? The Sleeper? Eh? You think the Sleeper's real and woke of
his own
accord--eh?"
"I'm a dull man, older than I look, and forgetful," said Graham. "Lots
of
things that have happened--especially of late years--. If I was
the
Sleeper, to tell you the truth, I couldn't know less about them."
"Eh!" said the voice. "Old, are you? You don't sound so very old! But
it's
not everyone keeps his memory to my time of life--truly. But these
notorious
things! But you're not so old as me--not nearly so old as me.
Well! I ought
not to judge other men by myself, perhaps. I'm young--for
so old a man. Maybe
you're old for so young."
"That's it," said Graham. "And I've a queer history. I know very
little.
And history! Practically I know no history. The Sleeper and
Julius
Caesar are all the same to me. It's interesting to hear you talk
of
these things."
"I know a few things," said the old man. "I know a thing or two.
But--.
Hark!"
The two men became silent, listening. There was a heavy thud, a
concussion
that made their seat shiver. The passers-by stopped, shouted
to one another.
The old man was full of questions; he shouted to a man
who passed near.
Graham, emboldened by his example, got up and accosted
others. None knew what
had happened.
He returned to the seat and found the old man muttering
vague
interrogations in an undertone. For a while they said nothing to
one
another.
The sense of this gigantic struggle, so near and yet so remote,
oppressed
Graham's imagination. Was this old man right, was the report of
the
people right, and were the revolutionaries winning? Or were they all
in
error, and were the red guards driving all before them? At any time
the
flood of warfare might pour into this silent quarter of the city
and
seize upon him again. It behoved him to learn all he could while
there
was time. He turned suddenly to the old man with a question and left
it
unsaid. But his motion moved the old man to speech again.
"Eh! but how things work together!" said the old man. "This Sleeper
that
all the fools put their trust in! I've the whole history of it--I
was
always a good one for histories. When I was a boy--I'm that old--I
used
to read printed books. You'd hardly think it. Likely you've
seen
none--they rot and dust so--and the Sanitary Company burns them to
make
ashlarite. But they were convenient in their dirty way. One learnt
a
lot. These new-fangled Babble Machines--they don't seem new-fangled
to
you, eh?--they're easy to hear, easy to forget. But I've traced all
the
Sleeper business from the first."
"You will scarcely believe it," said Graham slowly, "I'm so
ignorant--I've
been so preoccupied in my own little affairs, my
circumstances have been so
odd--I know nothing of this Sleeper's history.
Who was he?"
"Eh!" said the old man. "I know, I know. He was a poor nobody, and set
on
a playful woman, poor soul! And he fell into a trance. There's the
old things
they had, those brown things--silver photographs--still
showing him as he
lay, a gross and a half years ago--a gross and a half
of years."
"Set on a playful woman, poor soul," said Graham softly to himself,
and
then aloud, "Yes--well go on."
"You must know he had a cousin named Warming, a solitary man
without
children, who made a big fortune speculating in roads--the
first
Eadhamite roads. But surely you've heard? No? Why? He bought all
the
patent rights and made a big company. In those days there were grosses
of
grosses of separate businesses and business companies. Grosses
of
grosses! His roads killed the railroads--the old things--in two
dozen
years; he bought up and Eadhamited the tracks. And because he didn't
want
to break up his great property or let in shareholders, he left it all
to
the Sleeper, and put it under a Board of Trustees that he had picked
and
trained. He knew then the Sleeper wouldn't wake, that he would go
on
sleeping, sleeping till he died. He knew that quite well! And plump!
a
man in the United States, who had lost two sons in a boat
accident,
followed that up with another great bequest. His trustees
found
themselves with a dozen myriads of lions'-worth or more of property
at
the very beginning."
"What was his name?"
"Graham."
"No--I mean--that American's."
"Isbister."
"Isbister!" cried Graham. "Why, I don't even know the name."
"Of course not," said the old man. "Of course not. People don't learn
much
in the schools nowadays. But I know all about him. He was a rich
American who
went from England, and he left the Sleeper even more than
Warming. How he
made it? That I don't know. Something about pictures by
machinery. But he
made it and left it, and so the Council had its start.
It was just a council
of trustees at first."
"And how did it grow?"
"Eh!--but you're not up to things. Money attracts money--and twelve
brains
are better than one. They played it cleverly. They worked politics
with
money, and kept on adding to the money by working currency and
tariffs. They
grew--they grew. And for years the twelve trustees hid the
growing of the
Sleeper's estate under double names and company titles and
all that. The
Council spread by title deed, mortgage, share, every
political party, every
newspaper they bought. If you listen to the old
stories you will see the
Council growing and growing. Billions and
billions of lions at last--the
Sleeper's estate. And all growing out of a
whim--out of this Warming's will,
and an accident to Isbister's sons.
"Men are strange," said the old man. "The strange thing to me is how
the
Council worked together so long. As many as twelve. But they worked
in
cliques from the first. And they've slipped back. In my young
days
speaking of the Council was like an ignorant man speaking of God.
We
didn't think they could do wrong. We didn't know of their women and
all
that! Or else I've got wiser.
"Men are strange," said the old man. "Here are you, young and
ignorant,
and me--sevendy years old, and I might reasonably before
getting--explaining
it all to you short and clear.
"Sevendy," he said, "sevendy, and I hear and see--hear better than I
see.
And reason clearly, and keep myself up to all the happenings of
things.
Sevendy!
"Life is strange. I was twaindy before Ostrog was a baby. I remember
him
long before he'd pushed his way to the head of the Wind Vanes
Control.
I've seen many changes. Eh! I've worn the blue. And at last I've
come to
see this crush and darkness and tumult and dead men carried by in
heaps
on the ways. And all his doing! All his doing!"
His voice died away in scarcely articulate praises of Ostrog.
Graham thought. "Let me see," he said, "if I have it right."
He extended a hand and ticked off points upon his fingers. "The
Sleeper
has been asleep--"
"Changed," said the old man.
"Perhaps. And meanwhile the Sleeper's property grew in the hands of
Twelve
Trustees, until it swallowed up nearly all the great ownership of
the world.
The Twelve Trustees--by virtue of this property have become
masters of the
world. Because they are the paying power--just as the old
English Parliament
used to be--"
"Eh!" said the old man. "That's so--that's a good comparison.
You're not
so--"
"And now this Ostrog--has suddenly revolutionised the world by waking
the
Sleeper--whom no one but the superstitious, common people had ever
dreamt
would wake again--raising the Sleeper to claim his property from
the
Council, after all these years."
The old man endorsed this statement with a cough. "It's strange," he
said,
"to meet a man who learns these things for the first time
to-night."
"Aye," said Graham, "it's strange."
"Have you been in a Pleasure City?" said the old man. "All my life
I've
longed--" He laughed. "Even now," he said, "I could enjoy a little
fun.
Enjoy seeing things, anyhow." He mumbled a sentence Graham did
not
understand.
"The Sleeper--when did he awake?" said Graham suddenly.
"Three days ago."
"Where is he?"
"Ostrog has him. He escaped from the Council not four hours ago. My
dear
sir, where were you at the time? He was in the hall of the
markets--where the
fighting has been. All the city was screaming about
it. All the Babble
Machines. Everywhere it was shouted. Even the fools
who speak for the Council
were admitting it. Everyone was rushing off to
see him--everyone was getting
arms. Were you drunk or asleep? And even
then! But you're joking! Surely
you're pretending. It was to stop the
shouting of the Babble Machines and
prevent the people gathering that
they turned off the electricity--and put
this damned darkness upon us.
Do you mean to say--?"
"I had heard the Sleeper was rescued," said Graham. "But--to come back
a
minute. Are you sure Ostrog has him?"
"He won't let him go," said the old man.
"And the Sleeper. Are you sure he is not genuine? I have never heard--"
"So all the fools think. So they think. As if there wasn't a
thousand
things that were never heard. I know Ostrog too well for that. Did I
tell
you? In a way I'm a sort of relation of Ostrog's. A sort of
relation.
Through my daughter-in-law."
"I suppose--"
"Well?"
"I suppose there's no chance of this Sleeper asserting himself. I
suppose
he's certain to be a puppet--in Ostrog's hands or the Council's, as
soon
as the struggle is over."
"In Ostrog's hands--certainly. Why shouldn't he be a puppet? Look at
his
position. Everything done for him, every pleasure possible. Why should
he
want to assert himself?"
"What are these Pleasure Cities?" said Graham, abruptly.
The old man made him repeat the question. When at last he was assured
of
Graham's words, he nudged him violently. "That's _too_ much," said
he.
"You're poking fun at an old man. I've been suspecting you know more
than
you pretend."
"Perhaps I do," said Graham. "But no! why should I go on acting? No, I
do
not know what a Pleasure City is."
The old man laughed in an intimate way.
"What is more, I do not know how to read your letters, I do not know
what
money you use, I do not know what foreign countries there are. I do
not know
where I am. I cannot count. I do not know where to get food, nor
drink, nor
shelter."
"Come, come," said the old man, "if you had a glass of drink now,
would
you put it in your ear or your eye?"
"I want you to tell me all these things."
"He, he! Well, gentlemen who dress in silk must have their fun."
A
withered hand caressed Graham's arm for a moment. "Silk. Well, well!
But,
all the same, I wish I was the man who was put up as the Sleeper.
He'll
have a fine time of it. All the pomp and pleasure. He's a queer
looking
face. When they used to let anyone go to see him, I've got tickets
and
been. The image of the real one, as the photographs show him,
this
substitute used to be. Yellow. But he'll get fed up. It's a queer
world.
Think of the luck of it. The luck of it. I expect he'll be sent to
Capri.
It's the best fun for a greener."
His cough overtook him again. Then he began mumbling enviously
of
pleasures and strange delights. "The luck of it, the luck of it! All
my
life I've been in London, hoping to get my chance."
"But you don't know that the Sleeper died," said Graham, suddenly.
The old man made him repeat his words.
"Men don't live beyond ten dozen. It's not in the order of things,"
said
the old man. "I'm not a fool. Fools may believe it, but not me."
Graham became angry with the old man's assurance. "Whether you are a
fool
or not," he said, "it happens you are wrong about the Sleeper."
"Eh?"
"You are wrong about the Sleeper. I haven't told you before, but I
will
tell you now. You are wrong about the Sleeper."
"How do you know? I thought you didn't know anything--not even
about
Pleasure Cities."
Graham paused.
"You don't know," said the old man. "How are you to know? It's very
few
men--"
"I _am_ the Sleeper."
He had to repeat it.
There was a brief pause. "There's a silly thing to say, sir, if
you'll
excuse me. It might get you into trouble in a time like this,"
said
the old man.
Graham, slightly dashed, repeated his assertion.
"I was saying I was the Sleeper. That years and years ago I did,
indeed,
fall asleep, in a little stone-built village, in the days when there
were
hedgerows, and villages, and inns, and all the countryside cut up
into
little pieces, little fields. Have you never heard of those days? And
it
is I--I who speak to you--who awakened again these four days since."
"Four days since!--the Sleeper! But they've _got_ the Sleeper. They
have
him and they won't let him go. Nonsense! You've been talking
sensibly
enough up to now. I can see it as though I was there. There will
be
Lincoln like a keeper just behind him; they won't let him go about
alone.
Trust them. You're a queer fellow. One of these fun pokers. I see now
why
you have been clipping your words so oddly, but--"
He stopped abruptly, and Graham could see his gesture.
"As if Ostrog would let the Sleeper run about alone! No, you're
telling
that to the wrong man altogether. Eh! as if I should believe.
What's
your game? And besides, we've been talking of the Sleeper."
Graham stood up. "Listen," he said. "I am the Sleeper."
"You're an odd man," said the old man, "to sit here in the dark,
talking
clipped, and telling a lie of that sort. But--"
Graham's exasperation fell to laughter. "It is preposterous," he
cried.
"Preposterous. The dream must end. It gets wilder and wilder. Here
am
I--in this damned twilight--I never knew a dream in twilight
before--an
anachronism by two hundred years and trying to persuade an old
fool that
I am myself, and meanwhile--Ugh!"
He moved in gusty irritation and went striding. In a moment the old
man
was pursuing him. "Eh! but don't go!" cried the old man. "I'm an
old
fool, I know. Don't go. Don't leave me in all this darkness."
Graham hesitated, stopped. Suddenly the folly of telling his
secret
flashed into his mind.
"I didn't mean to offend you--disbelieving you," said the old man
coming
near. "It's no manner of harm. Call yourself the Sleeper if it
pleases
you. 'Tis a foolish trick--"
Graham hesitated, turned abruptly and went on his way.
For a time he heard the old man's hobbling pursuit and his wheezy
cries
receding. But at last the darkness swallowed him, and Graham saw
him no
more.
CHAPTER XII
OSTROG
Graham could now take a clearer view of his position. For a long time
yet
he wandered, but after the talk of the old man his discovery of
this
Ostrog was clear in his mind as the final inevitable decision. One
thing
was evident, those who were at the headquarters of the revolt
had
succeeded very admirably in suppressing the fact of his
disappearance.
But every moment he expected to hear the report of his death
or of his
recapture by the Council.
Presently a man stopped before him. "Have you heard?" he said.
"No!" said Graham, starting.
"Near a dozand," said the man, "a dozand men!" and hurried on.
A number of men and a girl passed in the darkness, gesticulating
and
shouting: "Capitulated! Given up!" "A dozand of men." "Two dozand
of
men." "Ostrog, Hurrah! Ostrog, Hurrah!" These cries receded,
became
indistinct.
Other shouting men followed. For a time his attention was absorbed in
the
fragments of speech he heard. He had a doubt whether all were
speaking
English. Scraps floated to him, scraps like Pigeon English, like
"nigger"
dialect, blurred and mangled distortions. He dared accost no one
with
questions. The impression the people gave him jarred altogether with
his
preconceptions of the struggle and confirmed the old man's faith
in
Ostrog. It was only slowly he could bring himself to believe that
all
these people were rejoicing at the defeat of the Council, that
the
Council which had pursued him with such power and vigour was after
all
the weaker of the two sides in conflict. And if that was so, how did
it
affect him? Several times he hesitated on the verge of
fundamental
questions. Once he turned and walked for a long way after a
little man of
rotund inviting outline, but he was unable to master confidence
to
address him.
It was only slowly that it came to him that he might ask for
the
"wind-vane offices" whatever the "wind-vane offices" might be. His
first
enquiry simply resulted in a direction to go on towards Westminster.
His
second led to the discovery of a short cut in which he was speedily
lost.
He was told to leave the ways to which he had hitherto
confined
himself--knowing no other means of transit--and to plunge down one
of the
middle staircases into the blackness of a cross-way. Thereupon came
some
trivial adventures; chief of these an ambiguous encounter with
a
gruff-voiced invisible creature speaking in a strange dialect that
seemed
at first a strange tongue, a thick flow of speech with the
drifting
corpses of English Words therein, the dialect of the latter-day
vile.
Then another voice drew near, a girl's voice singing, "tralala
tralala."
She spoke to Graham, her English touched with something of the
same
quality. She professed to have lost her sister, she blundered
needlessly
into him he thought, caught hold of him and laughed. But a word of
vague
remonstrance sent her into the unseen again.
The sounds about him increased. Stumbling people passed him,
speaking
excitedly. "They have surrendered!" "The Council! Surely not
the
Council!" "They are saying so in the Ways." The passage seemed
wider.
Suddenly the wall fell away. He was in a great space and people
were
stirring remotely. He inquired his way of an indistinct figure.
"Strike
straight across," said a woman's voice. He left his guiding wall, and
in
a moment had stumbled against a little table on which were utensils
of
glass. Graham's eyes, now attuned to darkness, made out a long vista
with
tables on either side. He went down this. At one or two of the tables
he
heard a clang of glass and a sound of eating. There were people then
cool
enough to dine, or daring enough to steal a meal in spite of
social
convulsion and darkness. Far off and high up he presently saw a
pallid
light of a semi-circular shape. As he approached this, a black edge
came
up and hid it. He stumbled at steps and found himself in a gallery.
He
heard a sobbing, and found two scared little girls crouched by a
railing.
These children became silent at the near sound of feet. He tried
to
console them, but they were very still until he left them. Then as
he
receded he could hear them sobbing again.
Presently he found himself at the foot of a staircase and near a
wide
opening. He saw a dim twilight above this and ascended out of
the
blackness into a street of moving ways again. Along this a
disorderly
swarm of people marched shouting. They were singing snatches of
the song
of the revolt, most of them out of tune. Here and there torches
flared
creating brief hysterical shadows. He asked his way and was twice
puzzled
by that same thick dialect. His third attempt won an answer he
could
understand. He was two miles from the wind-vane offices in
Westminster,
but the way was easy to follow.
When at last he did approach the district of the wind-vane offices
it
seemed to him, from the cheering processions that came marching along
the
Ways, from the tumult of rejoicing, and finally from the restoration
of
the lighting of the city, that the overthrow of the Council must
already
be accomplished. And still no news of his absence came to his
ears.
The re-illumination of the city came with startling abruptness.
Suddenly
he stood blinking, all about him men halted dazzled, and the world
was
incandescent. The light found him already upon the outskirts of
the
excited crowds that choked the ways near the wind-vane offices, and
the
sense of visibility and exposure that came with it turned his
colourless
intention of joining Ostrog to a keen anxiety.
For a time he was jostled, obstructed, and endangered by men hoarse
and
weary with cheering his name, some of them bandaged and bloody in
his
cause. The frontage of the wind-vane offices was illuminated by
some
moving picture, but what it was he could not see, because in spite of
his
strenuous attempts the density of the crowd prevented his approaching
it.
From the fragments of speech he caught, he judged it conveyed news of
the
fighting about the Council House. Ignorance and indecision made him
slow
and ineffective in his movements. For a time he could not conceive how
he
was to get within the unbroken façade of this place. He made his
way
slowly into the midst of this mass of people, until he realised that
the
descending staircase of the central way led to the interior of
the
buildings. This gave him a goal, but the crowding in the central
path
was so dense that it was long before he could reach it. And even then
he
encountered intricate obstruction, and had an hour of vivid
argument
first in this guard room and then in that before he could get a
note
taken to the one man of all men who was most eager to see him. His
story
was laughed to scorn at one place, and wiser for that, when at last
he
reached a second stairway he professed simply to have news
of
extraordinary importance for Ostrog. What it was he would not say.
They
sent his note reluctantly. For a long time he waited in a little room
at
the foot of the lift shaft, and thither at last came Lincoln,
eager,
apologetic, astonished. He stopped in the doorway scrutinising
Graham,
then rushed forward effusively.
"Yes," he cried. "It is you. And you are not dead!"
Graham made a brief explanation.
"My brother is waiting," explained Lincoln. "He is alone in the
wind-vane
offices. We feared you had been killed in the theatre. He
doubted--and
things are very urgent still in spite of what we are telling
them
_there_--or he would have come to you."
They ascended a lift, passed along a narrow passage, crossed a great
hall,
empty save for two hurrying messengers, and entered a comparatively
little
room, whose only furniture was a long settee and a large oval disc
of cloudy,
shifting grey, hung by cables from the wall. There Lincoln
left Graham for a
space, and he remained alone without understanding the
smoky shapes that
drove slowly across this disc.
His attention was arrested by a sound that began abruptly. It
was
cheering, the frantic cheering of a vast but very remote crowd, a
roaring
exultation. This ended as sharply as it had begun, like a sound
heard
between the opening and shutting of a door. In the outer room was a
noise
of hurrying steps and a melodious clinking as if a loose chain
was
running over the teeth of a wheel.
Then he heard the voice of a woman, the rustle of unseen garments. "It
is
Ostrog!" he heard her say. A little bell rang fitfully, and
then
everything was still again.
Presently came voices, footsteps and movement without. The footsteps
of
some one person detached itself from the other sounds, and drew
near,
firm, evenly measured steps. The curtain lifted slowly. A
tall,
white-haired man, clad in garments of cream-coloured silk,
appeared,
regarding Graham from under his raised arm.
For a moment the white form remained holding the curtain, then dropped
it
and stood before it. Graham's first impression was of a very
broad
forehead, very pale blue eyes deep sunken under white brows, an
aquiline
nose, and a heavily-lined resolute mouth. The folds of flesh over
the
eyes, the drooping of the corners of the mouth contradicted the
upright
bearing, and said the man was old. Graham rose to his feet
instinctively,
and for a moment the two men stood in silence, regarding each
other.
"You are Ostrog?" said Graham.
"I am Ostrog."
"The Boss?"
"So I am called."
Graham felt the inconvenience of the silence. "I have to thank
you
chiefly, I understand, for my safety," he said presently.
"We were afraid you were killed," said Ostrog. "Or sent to
sleep
again--for ever. We have been doing everything to keep our
secret--the
secret of your disappearance. Where have you been? How did you
get here?"
Graham told him briefly.
Ostrog listened in silence.
He smiled faintly. "Do you know what I was doing when they came to tell
me
you had come?"
"How can I guess?"
"Preparing your double."
"My double?"
"A man as like you as we could find. We were going to hypnotise him,
to
save him the difficulty of acting. It was imperative. The whole of
this
revolt depends on the idea that you are awake, alive, and with us.
Even
now a great multitude of people has gathered in the theatre clamouring
to
see you. They do not trust.... You know, of course--something of
your
position?"
"Very little," said Graham.
"It is like this." Ostrog walked a pace or two into the room and
turned.
"You are absolute owner," he said, "of the world. You are King of
the
Earth. Your powers are limited in many intricate ways, but you are
the
figure-head, the popular symbol of government. This White Council,
the
Council of Trustees as it is called--"
"I have heard the vague outline of these things."
"I wondered."
"I came upon a garrulous old man."
"I see.... Our masses--the word comes from your days--you know, of
course,
that we still have masses--regard you as our actual ruler. Just
as a great
number of people in your days regarded the Crown as the
ruler. They are
discontented--the masses all over the earth--with the
rule of your Trustees.
For the most part it is the old discontent, the
old quarrel of the common man
with his commonness--the misery of work and
discipline and unfitness. But
your Trustees have ruled ill. In certain
matters, in the administration of
the Labour Companies, for example, they
have been unwise. They have given
endless opportunities. Already we of
the popular party were agitating for
reforms--when your waking came.
Came! If it had been contrived it could not
have come more
opportunely." He smiled. "The public mind, making no allowance
for
your years of quiescence, had already hit on the thought of waking
you
and appealing to you, and--Flash!"
He indicated the outbreak by a gesture, and Graham moved his head to
show
that he understood.
"The Council muddled--quarrelled. They always do. They could not
decide
what to do with you. You know how they imprisoned you?"
"I see. I see. And now--we win?"
"We win. Indeed we win. To-night, in five swift hours. Suddenly we
struck
everywhere. The wind-vane people, the Labour Company and its
millions,
burst the bonds. We got the pull of the aeroplanes."
"Yes," said Graham.
"That was, of course, essential. Or they could have got away. All the
city
rose, every third man almost was in it! All the blue, all the
public
services, save only just a few aeronauts and about half the red
police.
You were rescued, and their own police of the ways--not half of
them
could be massed at the Council House--have been broken up, disarmed
or
killed. All London is ours--now. Only the Council House remains.
"Half of those who remain to them of the red police were lost in
that
foolish attempt to recapture you. They lost their heads when they
lost
you. They flung all they had at the theatre. We cut them off from
the
Council House there. Truly to-night has been a night of
victory.
Everywhere your star has blazed. A day ago--the White Council ruled
as it
has ruled for a gross of years, for a century and a half of years,
and
then, with only a little whispering, a covert arming here and
there,
suddenly--So!"
"I am very ignorant," said Graham. "I suppose--I do not clearly
understand
the conditions of this fighting. If you could explain. Where
is the Council?
Where is the fight?"
Ostrog stepped across the room, something clicked, and suddenly, save
for
an oval glow, they were in darkness. For a moment Graham was puzzled.
Then he saw that the cloudy grey disc had taken depth and colour,
had
assumed the appearance of an oval window looking out upon a
strange
unfamiliar scene.
At the first glance he was unable to guess what this scene might be.
It
was a daylight scene, the daylight of a wintry day, grey and
clear.
Across the picture, and halfway as it seemed between him and the
remoter
view, a stout cable of twisted white wire stretched vertically. Then
he
perceived that the rows of great wind-wheels he saw, the wide
intervals,
the occasional gulfs of darkness, were akin to those through which
he had
fled from the Council House. He distinguished an orderly file of
red
figures marching across an open space between files of men in black,
and
realised before Ostrog spoke that he was looking down on the
upper
surface of latter-day London. The overnight snows had gone. He
judged
that this mirror was some modern replacement of the camera obscura,
but
that matter was not explained to him. He saw that though the file of
red
figures was trotting from left to right, yet they were passing out of
the
picture to the left. He wondered momentarily, and then saw that
the
picture was passing slowly, panorama fashion, across the oval.
"In a moment you will see the fighting," said Ostrog at his elbow.
"Those
fellows in red you notice are prisoners. This is the roof space
of
London--all the houses are practically continuous now. The streets
and
public squares are covered in. The gaps and chasms of your time
have
disappeared."
Something out of focus obliterated half the picture. Its form suggested
a
man. There was a gleam of metal, a flash, something that swept across
the
oval, as the eyelid of a bird sweeps across its eye, and the picture
was
clear again. And now Graham beheld men running down among
the
wind-wheels, pointing weapons from which jetted out little smoky
flashes.
They swarmed thicker and thicker to the right, gesticulating--it
might be
they were shouting, but of that the picture told nothing. They and
the
wind-wheels passed slowly and steadily across the field of the
mirror.
"Now," said Ostrog, "comes the Council House," and slowly a black
edge
crept into view and gathered Graham's attention. Soon it was no longer
an
edge but a cavity, a huge blackened space amidst the clustering
edifices,
and from it thin spires of smoke rose into the pallid winter sky.
Gaunt
ruinous masses of the building, mighty truncated piers and girders,
rose
dismally out of this cavernous darkness. And over these vestiges of
some
splendid place, countless minute men were clambering, leaping,
swarming.
"This is the Council House," said Ostrog. "Their last stronghold. And
the
fools wasted enough ammunition to hold out for a month in blowing up
the
buildings all about them--to stop our attack. You heard the smash?
It
shattered half the brittle glass in the city."
And while he spoke, Graham saw that beyond this area of ruins,
overhanging
it and rising to a great height, was a ragged mass of white
building. This
mass had been isolated by the ruthless destruction of its
surroundings. Black
gaps marked the passages the disaster had torn apart;
big halls had been
slashed open and the decoration of their interiors
showed dismally in the
wintry dawn, and down the jagged walls hung
festoons of divided cables and
twisted ends of lines and metallic rods.
And amidst all the vast details
moved little red specks, the red-clothed
defenders of the Council. Every now
and then faint flashes illuminated
the bleak shadows. At the first sight it
seemed to Graham that an attack
upon this isolated white building was in
progress, but then he perceived
that the party of the revolt was not
advancing, but sheltered amidst the
colossal wreckage that encircled this
last ragged stronghold of the
red-garbed men, was keeping up a fitful
firing.
And not ten hours ago he had stood beneath the ventilating fans in
a
little chamber within that remote building wondering what was
happening
in the world!
Looking more attentively as this warlike episode moved silently across
the
centre of the mirror, Graham saw that the white building was
surrounded on
every side by ruins, and Ostrog proceeded to describe in
concise phrases how
its defenders had sought by such destruction to
isolate themselves from a
storm. He spoke of the loss of men that huge
downfall had entailed in an
indifferent tone. He indicated an improvised
mortuary among the wreckage,
showed ambulances swarming like cheese-mites
along a ruinous groove that had
once been a street of moving ways. He was
more interested in pointing out the
parts of the Council House, the
distribution of the besiegers. In a little
while the civil contest that
had convulsed London was no longer a mystery to
Graham. It was no
tumultuous revolt had occurred that night, no equal
warfare, but a
splendidly organised _coup d'état_. Ostrog's grasp of details
was
astonishing; he seemed to know the business of even the smallest knot
of
black and red specks that crawled amidst these places.
He stretched a huge black arm across the luminous picture, and showed
the
room whence Graham had escaped, and across the chasm of ruins the
course
of his flight. Graham recognised the gulf across which the gutter
ran,
and the wind-wheels where he had crouched from the flying machine.
The
rest of his path had succumbed to the explosion. He looked again at
the
Council House, and it was already half hidden, and on the right
a
hillside with a cluster of domes and pinnacles, hazy, dim and
distant,
was gliding into view.
"And the Council is really overthrown?" he said.
"Overthrown," said Ostrog.
"And I--. Is it indeed true that I--?"
"You are Master of the World."
"But that white flag--"
"That is the flag of the Council--the flag of the Rule of the World.
It
will fall. The fight is over. Their attack on the theatre was their
last
frantic struggle. They have only a thousand men or so, and some of
these
men will be disloyal. They have little ammunition. And we are
reviving
the ancient arts. We are casting guns."
"But--help. Is this city the world?"
"Practically this is all they have left to them of their empire.
Abroad
the cities have either revolted with us or wait the issue. Your
awakening
has perplexed them, paralysed them."
"But haven't the Council flying machines? Why is there no fighting
with
them?"
"They had. But the greater part of the aeronauts were in the revolt
with
us. They wouldn't take the risk of fighting on our side, but they
would
not stir against us. We _had_ to get a pull with the aeronauts.
Quite
half were with us, and the others knew it. Directly they knew you had
got
away, those looking for you dropped. We killed the man who shot
at
you--an hour ago. And we occupied the flying stages at the outset
in
every city we could, and so stopped and captured the greater
aeroplanes,
and as for the little flying machines that turned out--for some
did--we
kept up too straight and steady a fire for them to get near the
Council
House. If they dropped they couldn't rise again, because there's no
clear
space about there for them to get up. Several we have smashed,
several
others have dropped and surrendered, the rest have gone off to
the
Continent to find a friendly city if they can before their fuel runs
out.
Most of these men were only too glad to be taken prisoner and kept out
of
harm's way. Upsetting in a flying machine isn't a very
attractive
prospect. There's no chance for the Council that way. Its days are
done."
He laughed and turned to the oval reflection again to show Graham what
he
meant by flying stages. Even the four nearer ones were remote
and
obscured by a thin morning haze. But Graham could perceive they were
very
vast structures, judged even by the standard of the things about
them.
And then as these dim shapes passed to the left there came again the
sight
of the expanse across which the disarmed men in red had been
marching. And
then the black ruins, and then again the beleaguered white
fastness of the
Council. It appeared no longer a ghostly pile, but
glowing amber in the
sunlight, for a cloud shadow had passed. About it
the pigmy struggle still
hung in suspense, but now the red defenders were
no longer firing.
So, in a dusky stillness, the man from the nineteenth century saw
the
closing scene of the great revolt, the forcible establishment of
his
rule. With a quality of startling discovery it came to him that this
was
his world, and not that other he had left behind; that this was
no
spectacle to culminate and cease; that in this world lay whatever
life
was still before him, lay all his duties and dangers
and
responsibilities. He turned with fresh questions. Ostrog began to
answer
them, and then broke off abruptly. "But these things I must explain
more
fully later. At present there are--duties. The people are coming by
the
moving ways towards this ward from every part of the city--the
markets
and theatres are densely crowded. You are just in time for them. They
are
clamouring to see you. And abroad they want to see you. Paris, New
York,
Chicago, Denver, Capri--thousands of cities are up and in a
tumult,
undecided, and clamouring to see you. They have clamoured that you
should
be awakened for years, and now it is done they will scarcely
believe--"
"But surely--I can't go ..."
Ostrog answered from the other side of the room, and the picture on
the
oval disc paled and vanished as the light jerked back again. "There
are
kineto-telephoto-graphs," he said. "As you bow to the people
here--all
over the world myriads of myriads of people, packed and still in
darkened
halls, will see you also. In black and white, of course--not like
this.
And you will hear their shouts reinforcing the shouting in the
hall.
"And there is an optical contrivance we shall use," said Ostrog, "used
by
some of the posturers and women dancers. It may be novel to you.
You
stand in a very bright light, and they see not you but a magnified
image
of you thrown on a screen--so that even the furtherest man in
the
remotest gallery can, if he chooses, count your eyelashes."
Graham clutched desperately at one of the questions in his mind. "What
is
the population of London?" he said.
"Eight and twaindy myriads."
"Eight and what?"
"More than thirty-three millions."
These figures went beyond Graham's imagination.
"You will be expected to say something," said Ostrog. "Not what you
used
to call a Speech, but what our people call a word--just one sentence,
six
or seven words. Something formal. If I might suggest--'I have
awakened
and my heart is with you.' That is the sort of thing they want."
"What was that?" asked Graham.
"'I am awakened and my heart is with you.' And bow--bow royally. But
first
we must get you black robes--for black is your colour. Do you mind?
And then
they will disperse to their homes."
Graham hesitated. "I am in your hands," he said.
Ostrog was clearly of that opinion. He thought for a moment, turned to
the
curtain and called brief directions to some unseen attendants.
Almost
immediately a black robe, the very fellow of the black robe Graham
had
worn in the theatre, was brought. And as he threw it about his
shoulders
there came from the room without the shrilling of a high-pitched
bell.
Ostrog turned in interrogation to the attendant, then suddenly seemed
to
change his mind, pulled the curtain aside and disappeared.
For a moment Graham stood with the deferential attendant listening
to
Ostrog's retreating steps. There was a sound of quick question and
answer
and of men running. The curtain was snatched back and Ostrog
reappeared,
his massive face glowing with excitement. He crossed the room in
a
stride, clicked the room into darkness, gripped Graham's arm and
pointed
to the mirror.
"Even as we turned away," he said.
Graham saw his index finger, black and colossal, above the
mirrored
Council House. For a moment he did not understand. And then he
perceived
that the flagstaff that had carried the white banner was bare.
"Do you mean--?" he began.
"The Council has surrendered. Its rule is at an end for evermore."
"Look!" and Ostrog pointed to a coil of black that crept in little
jerks
up the vacant flagstaff, unfolding as it rose.
The oval picture paled as Lincoln pulled the curtain aside and entered.
"They are clamorous," he said.
Ostrog kept his grip of Graham's arm.
"We have raised the people," he said. "We have given them arms. For
to-day
at least their wishes must be law."
Lincoln held the curtain open for Graham and Ostrog to pass through....
On his way to the markets Graham had a transitory glance of a long
narrow
white-walled room in which men in the universal blue canvas were
carrying
covered things like biers, and about which men in medical purple
hurried
to and fro. From this room came groans and wailing. He had an
impression
of an empty blood-stained couch, of men on other couches, bandaged
and
blood-stained. It was just a glimpse from a railed footway and then
a
buttress hid the place and they were going on towards the markets....
The roar of the multitude was near now: it leapt to thunder.
And,
arresting his attention, a fluttering of black banners, the waving
of
blue canvas and brown rags, and the swarming vastness of the theatre
near
the public markets came into view down a long passage. The picture
opened
out. He perceived they were entering the great theatre of his
first
appearance, the great theatre he had last seen as a chequer-work of
glare
and blackness in his flight from the red police. This time he entered
it
along a gallery at a level high above the stage. The place was
now
brilliantly lit again. His eyes sought the gangway up which he had
fled,
but he could not tell it from among its dozens of fellows; nor could
he
see anything of the smashed seats, deflated cushions, and such
like
traces of the fight because of the density of the people. Except
the
stage the whole place was closely packed. Looking down the effect was
a
vast area of stippled pink, each dot a still upturned face regarding
him.
At his appearance with Ostrog the cheering died away, the singing
died
away, a common interest stilled and unified the disorder. It seemed
as
though every individual of those myriads was watching him.
CHAPTER XIII
THE END OF THE OLD ORDER
So far as Graham was able to judge, it was near midday when the
white
banner of the Council fell. But some hours had to elapse before it
was
possible to effect the formal capitulation, and so after he had
spoken
his "Word" he retired to his new apartments in the wind-vane offices.
The
continuous excitement of the last twelve hours had left him
inordinately
fatigued, even his curiosity was exhausted; for a space he sat
inert and
passive with open eyes, and for a space he slept. He was roused by
two
medical attendants, come prepared with stimulants to sustain him
through
the next occasion. After he had taken their drugs and bathed by
their
advice in cold water, he felt a rapid return of interest and energy,
and
was presently able and willing to accompany Ostrog through several
miles
(as it seemed) of passages, lifts, and slides to the closing scene of
the
White Council's rule.
The way ran deviously through a maze of buildings. They came at last to
a
passage that curved about, and showed broadening before him an
oblong
opening, clouds hot with sunset, and the ragged skyline of the
ruinous
Council House. A tumult of shouts came drifting up to him. In
another
moment they had come out high up on the brow of the cliff of
torn
buildings that overhung the wreckage. The vast area opened to
Graham's
eyes, none the less strange and wonderful for the remote view he had
had
of it in the oval mirror.
This rudely amphitheatral space seemed now the better part of a mile
to
its outer edge. It was gold lit on the left hand, catching the
sunlight,
and below and to the right clear and cold in the shadow. Above
the
shadowy grey Council House that stood in the midst of it, the great
black
banner of the surrender still hung in sluggish folds against the
blazing
sunset. Severed rooms, halls and passages gaped strangely, broken
masses
of metal projected dismally from the complex wreckage, vast masses
of
twisted cable dropped like tangled seaweed, and from its base came
a
tumult of innumerable voices, violent concussions, and the sound
of
trumpets. All about this great white pile was a ring of desolation;
the
smashed and blackened masses, the gaunt foundations and ruinous lumber
of
the fabric that had been destroyed by the Council's orders, skeletons
of
girders, Titanic masses of wall, forests of stout pillars. Amongst
the
sombre wreckage beneath, running water flashed and glistened, and
far
away across the space, out of the midst of a vague vast mass
of
buildings, there thrust the twisted end of a water-main, two hundred
feet
in the air, thunderously spouting a shining cascade. And everywhere
great
multitudes of people.
Wherever there was space and foothold, people swarmed, little
people,
small and minutely clear, except where the sunset touched them
to
indistinguishable gold. They clambered up the tottering walls, they
clung
in wreaths and groups about the high-standing pillars. They swarmed
along
the edges of the circle of ruins. The air was full of their shouting,
and
they were pressing and swaying towards the central space.
The upper storeys of the Council House seemed deserted, not a human
being
was visible. Only the drooping banner of the surrender hung
heavily against
the light. The dead were within the Council House, or
hidden by the swarming
people, or carried away. Graham could see only a
few neglected bodies in gaps
and corners of the ruins, and amidst the
flowing water.
"Will you let them see you, Sire?" said Ostrog. "They are very anxious
to
see you."
Graham hesitated, and then walked forward to where the broken verge
of
wall dropped sheer. He stood looking down, a lonely, tall, black
figure
against the sky.
Very slowly the swarming ruins became aware of him. And as they did
so
little bands of black-uniformed men appeared remotely, thrusting
through
the crowds towards the Council House. He saw little black heads
become
pink, looking at him, saw by that means a wave of recognition
sweep
across the space. It occurred to him that he should accord them
some
recognition. He held up his arm, then pointed to the Council House
and
dropped his hand. The voices below became unanimous, gathered
volume,
came up to him as multitudinous wavelets of cheering.
The western sky was a pallid bluish green, and Jupiter shone high in
the
south, before the capitulation was accomplished. Above was a
slow
insensible change, the advance of night serene and beautiful; below
was
hurry, excitement, conflicting orders, pauses, spasmodic developments
of
organisation, a vast ascending clamour and confusion. Before the
Council
came out, toiling perspiring men, directed by a conflict of
shouts,
carried forth hundreds of those who had perished in the
hand-to-hand
conflict within those long passages and chambers....
Guards in black lined the way that the Council would come, and as far
as
the eye could reach into the hazy blue twilight of the ruins,
and
swarming now at every possible point in the captured Council House
and
along the shattered cliff of its circumadjacent buildings,
were
innumerable people, and their voices, even when they were not
cheering,
were as the soughing of the sea upon a pebble beach. Ostrog had
chosen a
huge commanding pile of crushed and overthrown masonry, and on this
a
stage of timbers and metal girders was being hastily constructed.
Its
essential parts were complete, but humming and clangorous machinery
still
glared fitfully in the shadows beneath this temporary edifice.
The stage had a small higher portion on which Graham stood with Ostrog
and
Lincoln close beside him, a little in advance of a group of minor
officers. A
broader lower stage surrounded this quarter-deck, and on this
were the
black-uniformed guards of the revolt armed with the little green
weapons
whose very names Graham still did not know. Those standing about
him
perceived that his eyes wandered perpetually from the swarming people
in the
twilight ruins about him to the darkling mass of the White Council
House,
whence the Trustees would presently come, and to the gaunt cliffs
of ruin
that encircled him, and so back to the people. The voices of the
crowd
swelled to a deafening tumult.
He saw the Councillors first afar off in the glare of one of the
temporary
lights that marked their path, a little group of white figures
in a black
archway. In the Council House they had been in darkness. He
watched them
approaching, drawing nearer past first this blazing
electric star and then
that; the minatory roar of the crowd over whom
their power had lasted for a
hundred and fifty years marched along beside
them. As they drew still nearer
their faces came out weary, white, and
anxious. He saw them blinking up
through the glare about him and Ostrog.
He contrasted their strange cold
looks in the Hall of Atlas.... Presently
he could recognise several of them;
the man who had rapped the table at
Howard, a burly man with a red beard, and
one delicate-featured, short,
dark man with a peculiarly long skull. He noted
that two were whispering
together and looking behind him at Ostrog. Next
there came a tall, dark
and handsome man, walking downcast. Abruptly he
glanced up, his eyes
touched Graham for a moment, and passed beyond him to
Ostrog. The way
that had been made for them was so contrived that they had to
march past
and curve about before they came to the sloping path of planks
that
ascended to the stage where their surrender was to be made.
"The Master, the Master! God and the Master," shouted the people. "To
hell
with the Council!" Graham looked at their multitudes, receding
beyond
counting into a shouting haze, and then at Ostrog beside him,
white and
steadfast and still. His eye went again to the little group of
White
Councillors. And then he looked up at the familiar quiet stars
overhead. The
marvellous element in his fate was suddenly vivid. Could
that be his indeed,
that little life in his memory two hundred years gone
by--and this as
well?
CHAPTER XIV
FROM THE CROW'S NEST
And so after strange delays and through an avenue of doubt and
battle,
this man from the nineteenth century came at last to his position at
the
head of that complex world.
At first when he rose from the long deep sleep that followed his
rescue
and the surrender of the Council, he did not recognise his
surroundings.
By an effort he gained a clue in his mind, and all that had
happened came
back to him, at first with a quality of insincerity like a
story heard,
like something read out of a book. And even before his memories
were
clear, the exultation of his escape, the wonder of his prominence
were
back in his mind. He was owner of the world; Master of the Earth.
This
new great age was in the completest sense his. He no longer hoped
to
discover his experiences a dream; he became anxious now to
convince
himself that they were real.
An obsequious valet assisted him to dress under the direction of
a
dignified chief attendant, a little man whose face proclaimed
him
Japanese, albeit he spoke English like an Englishman. From the latter
he
learnt something of the state of affairs. Already the revolution was
an
accepted fact; already business was being resumed throughout the
city.
Abroad the downfall of the Council had been received for the most
part
with delight. Nowhere was the Council popular, and the thousand
cities
of Western America, after two hundred years still jealous of New
York,
London, and the East, had risen almost unanimously two days before at
the
news of Graham's imprisonment. Paris was fighting within itself. The
rest
of the world hung in suspense.
While he was breaking his fast, the sound of a telephone bell jetted
from
a corner, and his chief attendant called his attention to the voice
of
Ostrog making polite enquiries. Graham interrupted his refreshment
to
reply. Very shortly Lincoln arrived, and Graham at once expressed
a
strong desire to talk to people and to be shown more of the new life
that
was opening before him. Lincoln informed him that in three hours' time
a
representative gathering of officials and their wives would be held
in
the state apartments of the wind-vane Chief. Graham's desire to
traverse
the ways of the city was, however, at present impossible, because of
the
enormous excitement of the people. It was, however, quite possible
for
him to take a bird's-eye view of the city from the crow's nest of
the
wind-vane keeper. To this accordingly Graham was conducted by
his
attendant. Lincoln; with a graceful compliment to the
attendant,
apologised for not accompanying them, on account of the present
pressure
of administrative work.
Higher even than the most gigantic, wind-wheels hung this crow's nest,
a
clear thousand feet above the roofs, a little disc-shaped speck on
a
spear of metallic filigree, cable stayed. To its summit Graham was
drawn
in a little wire-hung cradle. Halfway down the frail-seeming stem was
a
light gallery about which hung a cluster of tubes--minute they
looked
from above--rotating slowly on the ring of its outer rail. These were
the
specula, _en rapport_ with the wind-vane keeper's mirrors, in one
of
which Ostrog had shown him the coming of his rule. His Japanese
attendant
ascended before him and they spent nearly an hour asking and
answering
questions.
It was a day full of the promise and quality of spring. The touch of
the
wind warmed. The sky was an intense blue and the vast expanse of
London
shone dazzling under the morning sun. The air was clear of smoke
and
haze, sweet as the air of a mountain glen.
Save for the irregular oval of ruins about the House of the Council
and
the black flag of the surrender that fluttered there, the mighty
city
seen from above showed few signs of the swift revolution that had, to
his
imagination, in one night and one day, changed the destinies of
the
world. A multitude of people still swarmed over these ruins, and the
huge
openwork stagings in the distance from which started in times of
peace
the service of aeroplanes to the various great cities of Europe
and
America, were also black with the victors. Across a narrow way
of
planking raised on trestles that crossed the ruins a crowd of
workmen
were busy restoring the connection between the cables and wires of
the
Council House and the rest of the city, preparatory to the
transfer
thither of Ostrog's headquarters from the Wind-Vane buildings.
For the rest the luminous expanse was undisturbed. So vast was
its
serenity in comparison with the areas of disturbance, that
presently
Graham, looking beyond them, could almost forget the thousands of
men
lying out of sight in the artificial glare within the
quasi-subterranean
labyrinth, dead or dying of the overnight wounds, forget
the improvised
wards with the hosts of surgeons, nurses, and bearers
feverishly busy,
forget, indeed, all the wonder, consternation and novelty
under the
electric lights. Down there in the hidden ways of the anthill he
knew
that the revolution triumphed, that black everywhere carried the
day,
black favours, black banners, black festoons across the streets. And
out
here, under the fresh sunlight, beyond the crater of the fight, as
if
nothing had happened to the earth, the forest of wind vanes that
had
grown from one or two while the Council had ruled, roared peacefully
upon
their incessant duty.
Far away, spiked, jagged and indented by the wind vanes, the Surrey
Hills
rose blue and faint; to the north and nearer, the sharp contours
of
Highgate and Muswell Hill were similarly jagged. And all over
the
countryside, he knew, on every crest and hill, where once the hedges
had
interlaced, and cottages, churches, inns, and farm houses had
nestled
among their trees, wind-wheels similar to those he saw and bearing
like
them vast advertisements, gaunt and distinctive symbols of the new
age,
cast their whirling shadows and stored incessantly the energy that
flowed
away incessantly through all the arteries of the city. And
underneath
these wandered the countless flocks and herds of the British Food
Trust,
his property, with their lonely guards and keepers.
Not a familiar outline anywhere broke the cluster of gigantic
shapes
below. St. Paul's he knew survived, and many of the old buildings
in
Westminster, embedded out of sight, arched over and covered in among
the
giant growths of this great age. The Thames, too, made no fall and
gleam
of silver to break the wilderness of the city; the thirsty water
mains
drank up every drop of its waters before they reached the walls. Its
bed
and estuary, scoured and sunken, was now a canal of sea water, and a
race
of grimy bargemen brought the heavy materials of trade from the
Pool
thereby beneath the very feet of the workers. Faint and dim in
the
eastward between earth and sky hung the clustering masts of the
colossal
shipping in the Pool. For all the heavy traffic, for which there was
no
need of haste, came in gigantic sailing ships from the ends of the
earth,
and the heavy goods for which there was urgency in mechanical ships of
a
smaller swifter sort.
And to the south over the hills came vast aqueducts with sea water for
the
sewers, and in three separate directions ran pallid lines--the
roads,
stippled with moving grey specks. On the first occasion that offered
he
was determined to go out and see these roads. That would come after
the
flying ship he was presently to try. His attendant officer described
them
as a pair of gently curving surfaces a hundred yards wide, each one
for
the traffic going in one direction, and made of a substance
called
Eadhamite--an artificial substance, so far as he could gather,
resembling
toughened glass. Along this shot a strange traffic of narrow
rubber-shod
vehicles, great single wheels, two and four wheeled vehicles,
sweeping
along at velocities of from one to six miles a minute. Railroads
had
vanished; a few embankments remained as rust-crowned trenches here
and
there. Some few formed the cores of Eadhamite ways.
Among the first things to strike his attention had been the great
fleets
of advertisement balloons and kites that receded in irregular
vistas
northward and southward along the lines of the aeroplane journeys.
No
great aeroplanes were to be seen. Their passages had ceased, and only
one
little-seeming monoplane circled high in the blue distance above
the
Surrey Hills, an unimpressive soaring speck.
A thing Graham had already learnt, and which he found very hard
to
imagine, was that nearly all the towns in the country, and almost all
the
villages, had disappeared. Here and there only, he understood,
some
gigantic hotel-like edifice stood amid square miles of some
single
cultivation and preserved the name of a town--as Bournemouth, Wareham,
or
Swanage. Yet the officer had speedily convinced him how inevitable such
a
change had been. The old order had dotted the country with
farmhouses,
and every two or three miles was the ruling landlord's estate,
and the
place of the inn and cobbler, the grocer's shop and church--the
village.
Every eight miles or so was the country town, where lawyer,
corn
merchant, wool-stapler, saddler, veterinary surgeon, doctor,
draper,
milliner and so forth lived. Every eight miles--simply because that
eight
mile marketing journey, four there and back, was as much as
was
comfortable for the farmer. But directly the railways came into play,
and
after them the light railways, and all the swift new motor cars that
had
replaced waggons and horses, and so soon as the high roads began to
be
made of wood, and rubber, and Eadhamite, and all sorts of elastic
durable
substances--the necessity of having such frequent market
towns
disappeared. And the big towns grew. They drew the worker with
the
gravitational force of seemingly endless work, the employer with
their
suggestion of an infinite ocean of labour.
And as the standard of comfort rose, as the complexity of the mechanism
of
living increased, life in the country had become more and more costly,
or
narrow and impossible. The disappearance of vicar and squire, the
extinction
of the general practitioner by the city specialist; had robbed
the village of
its last touch of culture. After telephone, kinematograph
and phonograph had
replaced newspaper, book, schoolmaster, and letter, to
live outside the range
of the electric cables was to live an isolated
savage. In the country were
neither means of being clothed nor fed
(according to the refined conceptions
of the time), no efficient doctors
for an emergency, no company and no
pursuits.
Moreover, mechanical appliances in agriculture made one engineer
the
equivalent of thirty labourers. So, inverting the condition of the
city
clerk in the days when London was scarce inhabitable because of the
coaly
foulness of its air, the labourers now came to the city and its life
and
delights at night to leave it again in the morning. The city
had
swallowed up humanity; man had entered upon a new stage in
his
development. First had come the nomad, the hunter, then had followed
the
agriculturist of the agricultural state, whose towns and cities and
ports
were but the headquarters and markets of the countryside. And
now,
logical consequence of an epoch of invention, was this huge
new
aggregation of men.
Such things as these, simple statements of fact though they were
to
contemporary men, strained Graham's imagination to picture. And when
he
glanced "over beyond there" at the strange things that existed on
the
Continent, it failed him altogether.
He had a vision of city beyond city; cities on great plains, cities
beside
great rivers, vast cities along the sea margin, cities girdled by
snowy
mountains. Over a great part of the earth the English tongue was
spoken;
taken together with its Spanish American and Hindoo and Negro and
"Pidgin"
dialects, it was the everyday-language of two-thirds of
humanity. On the
Continent, save as remote and curious survivals, three
other languages alone
held sway--German, which reached to Antioch and
Genoa and jostled
Spanish-English at Cadiz; a Gallicised Russian which
met the Indian English
in Persia and Kurdistan and the "Pidgin" English
in Pekin; and French still
clear and brilliant, the language of lucidity,
which shared the Mediterranean
with the Indian English and German and
reached through a negro dialect to the
Congo.
And everywhere now through the city-set earth, save in the
administered
"black belt" territories of the tropics, the same cosmopolitan
social
organisation prevailed, and everywhere from Pole to Equator his
property
and his responsibilities extended. The whole world was civilised;
the
whole world dwelt in cities; the whole world was his property....
Out of the dim south-west, glittering and strange, voluptuous, and in
some
way terrible, shone those Pleasure Cities of which
the
kinematograph-phonograph and the old man in the street had
spoken.
Strange places reminiscent of the legendary Sybaris, cities of
art
and beauty, mercenary art and mercenary beauty, sterile
wonderful
cities of motion and music, whither repaired all who profited by
the
fierce, inglorious, economic struggle that went on in the
glaring
labyrinth below.
Fierce he knew it was. How fierce he could judge from the fact that
these
latter-day people referred back to the England of the nineteenth
century
as the figure of an idyllic easy-going life. He turned his eyes to
the
scene immediately before him again, trying to conceive the big
factories
of that intricate maze....
CHAPTER XV
PROMINENT PEOPLE
The state apartments of the Wind Vane Keeper would have astonished
Graham
had he entered them fresh from his nineteenth century life, but
already
he was growing accustomed to the scale of the new time. He came
out
through one of the now familiar sliding panels upon a plateau of
landing
at the head of a flight of very broad and gentle steps, with men
and
women far more brilliantly dressed than any he had hitherto
seen,
ascending and descending. From this position he looked down a vista
of
subtle and varied ornament in lustreless white and mauve and
purple,
spanned by bridges that seemed wrought of porcelain and filigree,
and
terminating far off in a cloudy mystery of perforated screens.
Glancing upward, he saw tier above tier of ascending galleries with
faces
looking down upon him. The air was full of the babble of
innumerable
voices and of a music that descended from above, a gay and
exhilarating
music whose source he did not discover.
The central aisle was thick with people, but by no means
uncomfortably
crowded; altogether that assembly must have numbered many
thousands. They
were brilliantly, even fantastically dressed, the men as
fancifully as
the women, for the sobering influence of the Puritan conception
of
dignity upon masculine dress had long since passed away. The hair of
the
men, too, though it was rarely worn long, was commonly curled in
a
manner that suggested the barber, and baldness had vanished from
the
earth. Frizzy straight-cut masses that would have charmed
Rossetti
abounded, and one gentleman, who was pointed out to Graham under
the
mysterious title of an "amorist," wore his hair in two becoming plaits
_à
la_ Marguerite. The pigtail was in evidence; it would seem that
citizens
of Chinese extraction were no longer ashamed of their race. There
was
little uniformity of fashion apparent in the forms of clothing worn.
The
more shapely men displayed their symmetry in trunk hose, and here
were
puffs and slashes, and there a cloak and there a robe. The fashions
of
the days of Leo the Tenth were perhaps the prevailing influence, but
the
aesthetic conceptions of the far east were also patent.
Masculine
embonpoint, which, in Victorian times, would have been subjected to
the
buttoned perils, the ruthless exaggeration of tight-legged
tight-armed
evening dress, now formed but the basis of a wealth of dignity
and
drooping folds. Graceful slenderness abounded also. To Graham,
a
typically stiff man from a typically stiff period, not only did these
men
seem altogether too graceful in person, but altogether too expressive
in
their vividly expressive faces. They gesticulated, they
expressed
surprise, interest, amusement, above all, they expressed the
emotions
excited in their minds by the ladies about them with
astonishing
frankness. Even at the first glance it was evident that women
were in a
great majority.
The ladies in the company of these gentlemen displayed in dress,
bearing
and manner alike, less emphasis and more intricacy. Some affected
a
classical simplicity of robing and subtlety of fold, after the fashion
of
the First French Empire, and flashed conquering arms and shoulders
as
Graham passed. Others had closely-fitting dresses without seam or belt
at
the waist, sometimes with long folds falling from the shoulders.
The
delightful confidences of evening dress had not been diminished by
the
passage of two centuries.
Everyone's movements seemed graceful. Graham remarked to Lincoln that
he
saw men as Raphael's cartoons walking, and Lincoln told him that
the
attainment of an appropriate set of gestures was part of every
rich
person's education. The Master's entry was greeted with a sort
of
tittering applause, but these people showed their distinguished
manners
by not crowding upon him nor annoying him by any persistent scrutiny,
as
he descended the steps towards the floor of the aisle.
He had already learnt from Lincoln that these were the leaders of
existing
London society; almost every person there that night was either
a powerful
official or the immediate connexion of a powerful official.
Many had returned
from the European Pleasure Cities expressly to welcome
him. The aeronautic
authorities, whose defection had played a part in the
overthrow of the
Council only second to Graham's, were very prominent,
and so, too, was the
Wind Vane Control. Amongst others there were several
of the more prominent
officers of the Food Department; the controller of
the European Piggeries had
a particularly melancholy and interesting
countenance and a daintily cynical
manner. A bishop in full canonicals
passed athwart Graham's vision,
conversing with a gentleman dressed
exactly like the traditional Chaucer,
including even the laurel wreath.
"Who is that?" he asked almost involuntarily.
"The Bishop of London," said Lincoln.
"No--the other, I mean."
"Poet Laureate."
"You still--?"
"He doesn't make poetry, of course. He's a cousin of Wotton--one of
the
Councillors. But he's one of the Red Rose Royalists--a
delightful
club--and they keep up the tradition of these things."
"Asano told me there was a King."
"The King doesn't belong. They had to expel him. It's the Stuart blood,
I
suppose; but really--"
"Too much?"
"Far too much."
Graham did not quite follow all this, but it seemed part of the
general
inversion of the new age. He bowed condescendingly to his
first
introduction. It was evident that subtle distinctions of class
prevailed
even in this assembly, that only to a small proportion of the
guests, to
an inner group, did Lincoln consider it appropriate to introduce
him.
This first introduction was the Master Aeronaut, a man whose
sun-tanned
face contrasted oddly with the delicate complexions about him.
Just at
present his critical defection from the Council made him a very
important
person indeed.
His manner contrasted very favourably, according to Graham's ideas,
with
the general bearing. He offered a few commonplace remarks, assurances
of
loyalty and frank inquiries about the Master's health. His manner
was
breezy, his accent lacked the easy staccato of latter-day English.
He
made it admirably clear to Graham that he was a bluff "aerial
dog"--he
used that phrase--that there was no nonsense about him, that he was
a
thoroughly manly fellow and old-fashioned at that, that he didn't
profess
to know much, and that what he did not know was not worth knowing.
He
made a curt bow, ostentatiously free from obsequiousness, and passed.
"I am glad to see that type endures," said Graham.
"Phonographs and kinematographs," said Lincoln, a little spitefully.
"He
has studied from the life." Graham glanced at the burly form again.
It
was oddly reminiscent.
"As a matter of fact we bought him," said Lincoln. "Partly. And partly
he
was afraid of Ostrog. Everything rested with him."
He turned sharply to introduce the Surveyor-General of the Public
Schools.
This person was a willowy figure in a blue-grey academic gown,
he beamed down
upon Graham through _pince-nez_ of a Victorian pattern,
and illustrated his
remarks by gestures of a beautifully manicured hand.
Graham was immediately
interested in this gentleman's functions, and
asked him a number of
singularly direct questions. The Surveyor-General
seemed quietly amused at
the Master's fundamental bluntness. He was a
little vague as to the monopoly
of education his Company possessed; it
was done by contract with the
syndicate that ran the numerous London
Municipalities, but he waxed
enthusiastic over educational progress
since the Victorian times. "We have
conquered Cram," he said,
"completely conquered Cram--there is not an
examination left in the
world. Aren't you glad?"
"How do you get the work done?" asked Graham.
"We make it attractive--as attractive as possible. And if it does
not
attract then--we let it go. We cover an immense field."
He proceeded to details, and they had a lengthy conversation.
Graham
learnt that University Extension still existed in a modified form.
"There
is a certain type of girl, for example," said the
Surveyor-General,
dilating with a sense of his usefulness, "with a perfect
passion for
severe studies--when they are not too difficult you know. We
cater for
them by the thousand. At this moment," he said with a Napoleonic
touch,
"nearly five hundred phonographs are lecturing in different parts
of
London on the influence exercised by Plato and Swift on the love
affairs
of Shelley, Hazlitt, and Burns. And afterwards they write essays on
the
lectures, and the names in order of merit are put in conspicuous
places.
You see how your little germ has grown? The illiterate middle-class
of
your days has quite passed away."
"About the public elementary schools," said Graham. "Do you
control
them?"
The Surveyor-General did, "entirely." Now, Graham, in his later
democratic
days, had taken a keen interest in these and his questioning
quickened.
Certain casual phrases that had fallen from the old man with
whom he had
talked in the darkness recurred to him. The Surveyor-General,
in effect,
endorsed the old man's words. "We try and make the elementary
schools very
pleasant for the little children. They will have to work so
soon. Just a few
simple principles--obedience--industry."
"You teach them very little?"
"Why should we? It only leads to trouble and discontent. We amuse
them.
Even as it is--there are troubles--agitations. Where the labourers
get
the ideas, one cannot tell. They tell one another. There are
socialistic
dreams--anarchy even! Agitators _will_ get to work among them. I
take
it--I have always taken it--that my foremost duty is to fight
against
popular discontent. Why should people be made unhappy?"
"I wonder," said Graham thoughtfully. "But there are a great many things
I
want to know."
Lincoln, who had stood watching Graham's face throughout the
conversation,
intervened. "There are others," he said in an undertone.
The Surveyor-General of schools gesticulated himself away. "Perhaps,"
said
Lincoln, intercepting a casual glance, "you would like to know some
of these
ladies?"
The daughter of the Manager of the Piggeries was a particularly
charming
little person with red hair and animated blue eyes. Lincoln left
him
awhile to converse with her, and she displayed herself as quite
an
enthusiast for the "dear old days," as she called them, that had seen
the
beginning of his trance. As she talked she smiled, and her eyes smiled
in
a manner that demanded reciprocity.
"I have tried," she said, "countless times--to imagine those old
romantic
days. And to you--they are memories. How strange and crowded the
world
must seem to you! I have seen photographs and pictures of the past,
the
little isolated houses built of bricks made out of burnt mud and
all
black with soot from your fires, the railway bridges, the
simple
advertisements, the solemn savage Puritanical men in strange black
coats
and those tall hats of theirs, iron railway trains on iron
bridges
overhead, horses and cattle, and even dogs running half wild about
the
streets. And suddenly, you have come into this!"
"Into this," said Graham.
"Out of your life--out of all that was familiar."
"The old life was not a happy one," said Graham. "I do not regret that."
She looked at him quickly. There was a brief pause. She
sighed
encouragingly. "No?"
"No," said Graham. "It was a little life--and unmeaning. But
this--We
thought the world complex and crowded and civilised enough. Yet
I
see--although in this world I am barely four days old--looking back on
my
own time, that it was a queer, barbaric time--the mere beginning of
this
new order. The mere beginning of this new order. You will find it hard
to
understand how little I know."
"You may ask me what you like," she said, smiling at him.
"Then tell me who these people are. I'm still very much in the dark
about
them. It's puzzling. Are there any Generals?"
"Men in hats and feathers?"
"Of course not. No. I suppose they are the men who control the
great
public businesses. Who is that distinguished looking man?"
"That? He's a most important officer. That is Morden. He is
managing
director of the Antibilious Pill Department. I have heard that
his
workers sometimes turn out a myriad myriad pills a day in the
twenty-four
hours. Fancy a myriad myriad!"
"A myriad myriad. No wonder he looks proud," said Graham. "Pills! What
a
wonderful time it is! That man in purple?"
"He is not quite one of the inner circle, you know. But we like him. He
is
really clever and very amusing. He is one of the heads of the Medical
Faculty
of our London University. All medical men, you know, wear that
purple. But,
of course, people who are paid by fees for _doing_
something--" She smiled
away the social pretensions of all such people.
"Are any of your great artists or authors here?"
"No authors. They are mostly such queer people--and so preoccupied
about
themselves. And they quarrel so dreadfully! They will fight, some
of
them, for precedence on staircases! Dreadful, isn't it? But I
think
Wraysbury, the fashionable capillotomist, is here. From Capri."
"Capillotomist," said Graham. "Ah! I remember. An artist! Why not?"
"We have to cultivate him," she said apologetically. "Our heads are in
his
hands." She smiled.
Graham hesitated at the invited compliment, but his glance was
expressive.
"Have the arts grown with the rest of civilised things?" he
said. "Who are
your great painters?"
She looked at him doubtfully. Then laughed. "For a moment," she said,
"I
thought you meant--" She laughed again. "You mean, of course, those
good
men you used to think so much of because they could cover great spaces
of
canvas with oil-colours? Great oblongs. And people used to put the
things
in gilt frames and hang them up in rows in their square rooms. We
haven't
any. People grew tired of that sort of thing."
"But what did you think I meant?"
She put a finger significantly on a cheek whose glow was above
suspicion,
and smiled and looked very arch and pretty and inviting. "And
here," and
she indicated her eyelid.
Graham had an adventurous moment. Then a grotesque memory of a picture
he
had somewhere seen of Uncle Toby and the widow flashed across his
mind.
An archaic shame came upon him. He became acutely aware that he
was
visible to a great number of interested people. "I see," he
remarked
inadequately. He turned awkwardly away from her fascinating
facility. He
looked about him to meet a number of eyes that immediately
occupied
themselves with other things. Possibly he coloured a little. "Who is
that
talking with the lady in saffron?" he asked, avoiding her eyes.
The person in question he learnt was one of the great organisers of
the
American theatres just fresh from a gigantic production at Mexico.
His
face reminded Graham of a bust of Caligula. Another striking looking
man
was the Black Labour Master. The phrase at the time made no
deep
impression, but afterwards it recurred;--the Black Labour Master?
The
little lady in no degree embarrassed, pointed out to him a
charming
little woman as one of the subsidiary wives of the Anglican Bishop
of
London. She added encomiums on the episcopal courage--hitherto there
had
been a rule of clerical monogamy--"neither a natural nor an
expedient
condition of things. Why should the natural development of the
affections
be dwarfed and restricted because a man is a priest?"
"And, bye the bye," she added, "are you an Anglican?" Graham was on
the
verge of hesitating inquiries about the status of a "subsidiary
wife,"
apparently an euphemistic phrase, when Lincoln's return broke off
this
very suggestive and interesting conversation. They crossed the aisle
to
where a tall man in crimson, and two charming persons in Burmese
costume
(as it seemed to him) awaited him diffidently. From their civilities
he
passed to other presentations.
In a little while his multitudinous impressions began to
organise
themselves into a general effect. At first the glitter of the
gathering
had raised all the democrat in Graham; he had felt hostile and
satirical.
But it is not in human nature to resist an atmosphere of
courteous
regard. Soon the music, the light, the play of colours, the shining
arms
and shoulders about him, the touch of hands, the transient interest
of
smiling faces, the frothing sound of skilfully modulated voices,
the
atmosphere of compliment, interest and respect, had woven together into
a
fabric of indisputable pleasure. Graham for a time forgot his
spacious
resolutions. He gave way insensibly to the intoxication of the
position
that was conceded him, his manner became more convincingly regal,
his
feet walked assuredly, the black robe fell with a bolder fold and
pride
ennobled his voice. After all, this was a brilliant interesting
world.
He looked up and saw passing across a bridge of porcelain and looking
down
upon him, a face that was almost immediately hidden, the face of the
girl he
had seen overnight in the little room beyond the theatre after
his escape
from the Council. And she was watching him.
For the moment he did not remember when he had seen her, and then came
a
vague memory of the stirring emotions of their first encounter. But
the
dancing web of melody about him kept the air of that great marching
song
from his memory.
The lady to whom he talked repeated her remark, and Graham
recalled
himself to the quasi-regal flirtation upon which he was engaged.
Yet, unaccountably, a vague restlessness, a feeling that grew
to
dissatisfaction, came into his mind. He was troubled as if by some
half
forgotten duty, by the sense of things important slipping from him
amidst
this light and brilliance. The attraction that these ladies who
crowded
about him were beginning to exercise ceased. He no longer gave vague
and
clumsy responses to the subtly amorous advances that he was now
assured
were being made to him, and his eyes wandered for another sight of
the
girl of the first revolt.
Where, precisely, had he seen her?...
Graham was in one of the upper galleries in conversation with
a
bright-eyed lady on the subject of Eadhamite--the subject was his
choice
and not hers. He had interrupted her warm assurances of personal
devotion
with a matter-of-fact inquiry. He found her, as he had already
found
several other latter-day women that night, less well informed
than
charming. Suddenly, struggling against the eddying drift of
nearer
melody, the song of the Revolt, the great song he had heard in the
Hall,
hoarse and massive, came beating down to him.
Ah! Now he remembered!
He glanced up startled, and perceived above him an _oeil de boeuf_
through
which this song had come, and beyond, the upper courses of cable,
the blue
haze, and the pendant fabric of the lights of the public ways.
He heard the
song break into a tumult of voices and cease. He perceived
quite clearly the
drone and tumult of the moving platforms and a murmur
of many people. He had
a vague persuasion that he could not account for,
a sort of instinctive
feeling that outside in the ways a huge crowd must
be watching this place in
which their Master amused himself.
Though the song had stopped so abruptly, though the special music of
this
gathering reasserted itself, the _motif_ of the marching song, once
it had
begun, lingered in his mind.
The bright-eyed lady was still struggling with the mysteries of
Eadhamite
when he perceived the girl he had seen in the theatre again. She
was
coming now along the gallery towards him; he saw her first before she
saw
him. She was dressed in a faintly luminous grey, her dark hair about
her
brows was like a cloud, and as he saw her the cold light from
the
circular opening into the ways fell upon her downcast face.
The lady in trouble about the Eadhamite saw the change in his
expression,
and grasped her opportunity to escape. "Would you care to know
that girl,
Sire?" she asked boldly. "She is Helen Wotton--a niece of
Ostrog's. She
knows a great many serious things. She is one of the most
serious persons
alive. I am sure you will like her."
In another moment Graham was talking to the girl, and the bright-eyed
lady
had fluttered away.
"I remember you quite well," said Graham. "You were in that little
room.
When all the people were singing and beating time with their feet.
Before
I walked across the Hall."
Her momentary embarrassment passed. She looked up at him, and her face
was
steady. "It was wonderful," she said, hesitated, and spoke with a
sudden
effort. "All those people would have died for you, Sire. Countless
people did
die for you that night."
Her face glowed. She glanced swiftly aside to see that no other heard
her
words.
Lincoln appeared some way off along the gallery, making his way
through
the press towards them. She saw him and turned to Graham
strangely
eager, with a swift change to confidence and intimacy. "Sire," she
said
quickly, "I cannot tell you now and here. But the common people are
very
unhappy; they are oppressed--they are misgoverned. Do not forget
the
people, who faced death--death that you might live."
"I know nothing--" began Graham.
"I cannot tell you now."
Lincoln's face appeared close to them. He bowed an apology to the girl.
"You find the new world amusing, Sire?" asked Lincoln, with
smiling
deference, and indicating the space and splendour of the gathering by
one
comprehensive gesture. "At any rate, you find it changed."
"Yes," said Graham, "changed. And yet, after all, not so
greatly
changed."
"Wait till you are in the air," said Lincoln. "The wind has fallen;
even
now an aeroplane awaits you."
The girl's attitude awaited dismissal.
Graham glanced at her face, was on the verge of a question, found
a
warning in her expression, bowed to her and turned to accompany
Lincoln.
CHAPTER XVI
THE MONOPLANE
The Flying Stages of London were collected together in an
irregular
crescent on the southern side of the river. They formed three
groups of
two each and retained the names of ancient suburban hills or
villages.
They were named in order, Roehampton, Wimbledon Park, Streatham,
Norwood,
Blackheath, and Shooter's Hill. They were uniform structures rising
high
above the general roof surfaces. Each was about four thousand yards
long
and a thousand broad, and constructed of the compound of aluminum
and
iron that had replaced iron in architecture. Their higher tiers formed
an
openwork of girders through which lifts and staircases ascended.
The
upper surface was a uniform expanse, with portions--the
starting
carriers--that could be raised and were then able to run on very
slightly
inclined rails to the end of the fabric.
Graham went to the flying stages by the public ways. He was accompanied
by
Asano, his Japanese attendant. Lincoln was called away by Ostrog, who
was
busy with his administrative concerns. A strong guard of the
Wind-Vane police
awaited the Master outside the Wind-Vane offices, and
they cleared a space
for him on the upper moving platform. His passage to
the flying stages was
unexpected, nevertheless a considerable crowd
gathered and followed him to
his destination. As he went along, he could
hear the people shouting his
name, and saw numberless men and women and
children in blue come swarming up
the staircases in the central path,
gesticulating and shouting. He could not
hear what they shouted. He was
struck again by the evident existence of a
vulgar dialect among the poor
of the city. When at last he descended, his
guards were immediately
surrounded by a dense excited crowd. Afterwards it
occurred to him that
some had attempted to reach him with petitions. His
guards cleared a
passage for him with difficulty.
He found a monoplane in charge of an aeronaut awaiting him on the
westward
stage. Seen close this mechanism was no longer small. As it lay
on its
launching carrier upon the wide expanse of the flying stage, its
aluminum
body skeleton was as big as the hull of a twenty-ton yacht. Its
lateral
supporting sails braced and stayed with metal nerves almost like
the nerves
of a bee's wing, and made of some sort of glassy artificial
membrane, cast
their shadow over many hundreds of square yards. The
chairs for the engineer
and his passenger hung free to swing by a complex
tackle, within the
protecting ribs of the frame and well abaft the
middle. The passenger's chair
was protected by a wind-guard and guarded
about with metallic rods carrying
air cushions. It could, if desired, be
completely closed in, but Graham was
anxious for novel experiences, and
desired that it should be left open. The
aeronaut sat behind a glass that
sheltered his face. The passenger could
secure himself firmly in his
seat, and this was almost unavoidable on
landing, or he could move along
by means of a little rail and rod to a locker
at the stem of the machine,
where his personal luggage, his wraps and
restoratives were placed, and
which also with the seats, served as a
makeweight to the parts of the
central engine that projected to the propeller
at the stern.
The flying stage about him was empty save for Asano and their suite
of
attendants. Directed by the aeronaut he placed himself in his seat.
Asano
stepped through the bars of the hull, and stood below on the stage
waving
his hand. He seemed to slide along the stage to the right and
vanish.
The engine was humming loudly, the propeller spinning, and for a
second
the stage and the buildings beyond were gliding swiftly and
horizontally
past Graham's eye; then these things seemed to tilt up abruptly.
He
gripped the little rods on either side of him instinctively. He
felt
himself moving upward, heard the air whistle over the top of the
wind
screen. The propeller screw moved round with powerful
rhythmic
impulses--one, two, three, pause; one, two, three--which the
engineer
controlled very delicately. The machine began a quivering vibration
that
continued throughout the flight, and the roof areas seemed running
away
to starboard very quickly and growing rapidly smaller. He looked
from
the face of the engineer through the ribs of the machine.
Looking
sideways, there was nothing very startling in what he saw--a
rapid
funicular railway might have given the same sensations. He
recognised
the Council House and the Highgate Ridge. And then he looked
straight
down between his feet.
For a moment physical terror possessed him, a passionate sense
of
insecurity. He held tight. For a second or so he could not lift his
eyes.
Some hundred feet or more sheer below him was one of the big
wind-vanes
of south-west London, and beyond it the southernmost flying stage
crowded
with little black dots. These things seemed to be falling away from
him.
For a second he had an impulse to pursue the earth. He set his teeth,
he
lifted his eyes by a muscular effort, and the moment of panic passed.
He remained for a space with his teeth set hard, his eyes staring into
the
sky. Throb, throb, throb--beat, went the engine; throb, throb,
throb--beat.
He gripped his bars tightly, glanced at the aeronaut, and
saw a smile upon
his sun-tanned face. He smiled in return--perhaps a
little artificially. "A
little strange at first," he shouted before he
recalled his dignity. But he
dared not look down again for some time. He
stared over the aeronaut's head
to where a rim of vague blue horizon
crept up the sky. For a little while he
could not banish the thought of
possible accidents from his mind. Throb,
throb, throb--beat; suppose some
trivial screw went wrong in that supporting
engine! Suppose--! He made a
grim effort to dismiss all such suppositions.
After a while they did at
least abandon the foreground of his thoughts. And
up he went steadily,
higher and higher into the clear air.
Once the mental shock of moving unsupported through the air was over,
his
sensations ceased to be unpleasant, became very speedily
pleasurable. He had
been warned of air sickness. But he found the
pulsating movement of the
monoplane as it drove up the faint south-west
breeze was very little in
excess of the pitching of a boat head on to
broad rollers in a moderate gale,
and he was constitutionally a good
sailor. And the keenness of the more
rarefied air into which they
ascended produced a sense of lightness and
exhilaration. He looked up
and saw the blue sky above fretted with cirrus
clouds. His eye came
cautiously down through the ribs and bars to a shining
flight of white
birds that hung in the lower sky. For a space he watched
these. Then
going lower and less apprehensively, he saw the slender figure of
the
Wind-Vane keeper's crow's nest shining golden in the sunlight
and
growing smaller every moment. As his eye fell with more confidence
now,
there came a blue line of hills, and then London, already to leeward,
an
intricate space of roofing. Its near edge came sharp and clear,
and
banished his last apprehensions in a shock of surprise. For the
boundary
of London was like a wall, like a cliff, a steep fall of three or
four
hundred feet, a frontage broken only by terraces here and there,
a
complex decorative façade.
That gradual passage of town into country through an extensive sponge
of
suburbs, which was so characteristic a feature of the great cities of
the
nineteenth century, existed no longer. Nothing remained of it here but
a
waste of ruins, variegated and dense with thickets of the
heterogeneous
growths that had once adorned the gardens of the belt,
interspersed among
levelled brown patches of sown ground, and verdant
stretches of winter
greens. The latter even spread among the vestiges of
houses. But for the
most part the reefs and skerries of ruins, the wreckage
of suburban
villas, stood among their streets and roads, queer islands amidst
the
levelled expanses of green and brown, abandoned indeed by the
inhabitants
years since, but too substantial, it seemed, to be cleared out of
the way
of the wholesale horticultural mechanisms of the time.
The vegetation of this waste undulated and frothed amidst the
countless
cells of crumbling house walls, and broke along the foot of the
city wall
in a surf of bramble and holly and ivy and teazle and tall grasses.
Here
and there gaudy pleasure palaces towered amidst the puny remains
of
Victorian times, and cable ways slanted to them from the city.
That
winter day they seemed deserted. Deserted, too, were the
artificial
gardens among the ruins. The city limits were indeed as sharply
defined
as in the ancient days when the gates were shut at nightfall and
the
robber foeman prowled to the very walls. A huge semi-circular
throat
poured out a vigorous traffic upon the Eadhamite Bath Road. So the
first
prospect of the world beyond the city flashed on Graham, and
dwindled.
And when at last he could look vertically downward again, he saw
below
him the vegetable fields of the Thames valley--innumerable minute
oblongs
of ruddy brown, intersected by shining threads, the sewage
ditches.
His exhilaration increased rapidly, became a sort of intoxication.
He
found himself drawing deep breaths of air, laughing aloud, desiring
to
shout. After a time that desire became too strong for him, and
he
shouted. They curved about towards the south. They drove with a
slight
list to leeward, and with a slow alternation of movement, first a
short,
sharp ascent and then a long downward glide that was very swift
and
pleasing. During these downward glides the propeller was
inactive
altogether. These ascents gave Graham a glorious sense of
successful
effort; the descents through the rarefied air were beyond all
experience.
He wanted never to leave the upper air again.
For a time he was intent upon the landscape that ran swiftly
northward
beneath him. Its minute, clear detail pleased him exceedingly. He
was
impressed by the ruin of the houses that had once dotted the country,
by
the vast treeless expanse of country from which all farms and
villages
had gone, save for crumbling ruins. He had known the thing was so,
but
seeing it so was an altogether different matter. He tried to make
out
familiar places within the hollow basin of the world below, but at
first
he could distinguish no data now that the Thames valley was left
behind.
Soon, however, they were driving over a sharp chalk hill that
he
recognised as the Guildford Hog's Back, because of the familiar
outline
of the gorge at its eastward end, and because of the ruins of the
town
that rose steeply on either lip of this gorge. And from that he made
out
other points, Leith Hill, the sandy wastes of Aldershot, and so
forth.
Save where the broad Eadhamite Portsmouth Road, thickly dotted
with
rushing shapes, followed the course of the old railway, the gorge of
the
wey was choked with thickets.
The whole expanse of the Downs escarpment, so far as the grey
haze
permitted him to see, was set with wind-wheels to which the largest
of
the city was but a younger brother. They stirred with a stately
motion
before the south-west wind. And here and there were patches dotted
with
the sheep of the British Food Trust, and here and there a
mounted
shepherd made a spot of black. Then rushing under the stern of
the
monoplane came the Wealden Heights, the line of Hindhead, Pitch Hill,
and
Leith Hill, with a second row of wind-wheels that seemed striving to
rob
the downland whirlers of their share of breeze. The purple heather
was
speckled with yellow gorse, and on the further side a drove of black
oxen
stampeded before a couple of mounted men. Swiftly these swept behind,
and
dwindled and lost colour, and became scarce moving specks that
were
swallowed up in haze.
And when these had vanished in the distance Graham heard a peewit
wailing
close at hand. He perceived he was now above the South Downs, and
staring
over his shoulder saw the battlements of Portsmouth Landing Stage
towering
over the ridge of Portsdown Hill. In another moment there came
into sight a
spread of shipping like floating cities, the little white
cliffs of the
Needles dwarfed and sunlit, and the grey and glittering
waters of the narrow
sea. They seemed to leap the Solent in a moment, and
in a few seconds the
Isle of Wight was running past, and then beneath him
spread a wider and wider
extent of sea, here purple with the shadow of a
cloud, here grey, here a
burnished mirror, and here a spread of cloudy
greenish blue. The Isle of
Wight grew smaller and smaller. In a few more
minutes a strip of grey haze
detached itself from other strips that were
clouds, descended out of the sky
and became a coast-line--sunlit and
pleasant--the coast of northern France.
It rose, it took colour, became
definite and detailed, and the counterpart of
the Downland of England was
speeding by below.
In a little time, as it seemed, Paris came above the horizon, and
hung
there for a space, and sank out of sight again as the monoplane
circled
about to the north. But he perceived the Eiffel Tower still standing,
and
beside it a huge dome surmounted by a pin-point Colossus. And
he
perceived, too, though he did not understand it at the time, a
slanting
drift of smoke. The aeronaut said something about "trouble in
the
under-ways," that Graham did not heed. But he marked the minarets
and
towers and slender masses that streamed skyward above the
city
wind-vanes, and knew that in the matter of grace at least Paris
still
kept in front of her larger rival. And even as he looked a pale
blue
shape ascended very swiftly from the city like a dead leaf driving
up
before a gale. It curved round and soared towards them, growing
rapidly
larger and larger. The aeronaut was saying something. "What?"
said
Graham, loth to take his eyes from this. "London aeroplane, Sire,"
bawled
the aeronaut, pointing.
They rose and curved about northward as it drew nearer. Nearer it came
and
nearer, larger and larger. The throb, throb, throb--beat, of the
monoplane's
flight, that had seemed so potent, and so swift, suddenly
appeared slow by
comparison with this tremendous rush. How great the
monster seemed, how swift
and steady! It passed quite closely beneath
them, driving along silently, a
vast spread of wire-netted translucent
wings, a thing alive. Graham had a
momentary glimpse of the rows and rows
of wrapped-up passengers, slung in
their little cradles behind
wind-screens, of a white-clothed engineer
crawling against the gale along
a ladder way, of spouting engines beating
together, of the whirling wind
screw, and of a wide waste of wing. He exulted
in the sight. And in an
instant the thing had passed.
It rose slightly and their own little wings swayed in the rush of
its
flight. It fell and grew smaller. Scarcely had they moved, as it
seemed,
before it was again only a flat blue thing that dwindled in the sky.
This
was the aeroplane that went to and fro between London and Paris. In
fair
weather and in peaceful times it came and went four times a day.
They beat across the Channel, slowly as it seemed now to Graham's
enlarged
ideas, and Beachy Head rose greyly to the left of them.
"Land," called the aeronaut, his voice small against the whistling of
the
air over the wind-screen.
"Not yet," bawled Graham, laughing. "Not land yet. I want to learn more
of
this machine."
"I meant--" said the aeronaut.
"I want to learn more of this machine," repeated Graham.
"I'm coming to you," he said, and had flung himself free of his chair
and
taken a step along the guarded rail between them. He stopped for
a
moment, and his colour changed and his hands tightened. Another step
and
he was clinging close to the aeronaut. He felt a weight on his
shoulder,
the pressure of the air. His hat was a whirling speck behind. The
wind
came in gusts over his wind-screen and blew his hair in streamers
past
his cheek. The aeronaut made some hasty adjustments for the shifting
of
the centres of gravity and pressure.
"I want to have these things explained," said Graham. "What do you do
when
you move that engine forward?"
The aeronaut hesitated. Then he answered, "They are complex, Sire."
"I don't mind," shouted Graham. "I don't mind."
There was a moment's pause. "Aeronautics is the secret--the privilege--"
"I know. But I'm the Master, and I mean to know." He laughed, full of
this
novel realisation of power that was his gift from the upper air.
The monoplane curved about, and the keen fresh wind cut across
Graham's
face and his garment lugged at his body as the stem pointed round to
the
west. The two men looked into each other's eyes.
"Sire, there are rules--"
"Not where I am concerned," said Graham, "You seem to forget."
The aeronaut scrutinised his face "No," he said. "I do not forget,
Sire.
But in all the earth--no man who is not a sworn aeronaut--has ever
a
chance. They come as passengers--"
"I have heard something of the sort. But I'm not going to argue
these
points. Do you know why I have slept two hundred years? To fly!"
"Sire," said the aeronaut, "the rules--if I break the rules--"
Graham waved the penalties aside.
"Then if you will watch me--"
"No," said Graham, swaying and gripping tight as the machine lifted
its
nose again for an ascent. "That's not my game. I want to do it
myself.
Do it myself if I smash for it! No! I will. See I am going to clamber
by
this--to come and share your seat. Steady! I mean to fly of my
own
accord if I smash at the end of it. I will have something to pay for
my
sleep. Of all other things--. In my past it was my dream to
fly.
Now--keep your balance."
"A dozen spies are watching me, Sire!"
Graham's temper was at end. Perhaps he chose it should be. He swore.
He
swung himself round the intervening mass of levers and the
monoplane
swayed.
"Am I Master of the earth?" he said. "Or is your Society? Now. Take
your
hands off those levers, and hold my wrists. Yes--so. And now, how do
we
turn her nose down to the glide?"
"Sire," said the aeronaut.
"What is it?"
"You will protect me?"
"Lord! Yes! If I have to burn London. Now!"
And with that promise Graham bought his first lesson in aerial
navigation.
"It's clearly to your advantage, this journey," he said with
a loud
laugh--for the air was like strong wine--"to teach me quickly and
well. Do I
pull this? Ah! So! Hullo!"
"Back, Sire! Back!"
"Back--right. One--two--three--good God! Ah! Up she goes! But this
is
living!"
And now the machine began to dance the strangest figures in the air.
Now
it would sweep round a spiral of scarcely a hundred yards diameter,
now
rush up into the air and swoop down again, steeply, swiftly, falling
like
a hawk, to recover in a rushing loop that swept it high again. In one
of
these descents it seemed driving straight at the drifting park
of
balloons in the southeast, and only curved about and cleared them by
a
sudden recovery of dexterity. The extraordinary swiftness and
smoothness
of the motion, the extraordinary effect of the rarefied air upon
his
constitution, threw Graham into a careless fury.
But at last a queer incident came to sober him, to send him flying
down
once more to the crowded life below with all its dark insoluble
riddles.
As he swooped, came a tap and something flying past, and a drop like
a
drop of rain. Then as he went on down he saw something like a white
rag
whirling down in his wake. "What was that?" he asked. "I did not
see."
The aeronaut glanced, and then clutched at the lever to recover, for
they
were sweeping down. When the monoplane was rising again he drew a
deep
breath and replied, "That," and he indicated the white thing
still
fluttering down, "was a swan."
"I never saw it," said Graham.
The aeronaut made no answer, and Graham saw little drops upon
his
forehead.
They drove horizontally while Graham clambered back to the
passenger's
place out of the lash of the wind. And then came a swift rush
down, with
the wind-screw whirling to check their fall, and the flying stage
growing
broad and dark before them. The sun, sinking over the chalk hills in
the
west, fell with them, and left the sky a blaze of gold.
Soon men could be seen as little specks. He heard a noise coming up
to
meet him, a noise like the sound of waves upon a pebbly beach, and
saw
that the roofs about the flying stage were dense with his
people
rejoicing over his safe return. A black mass was crushed together
under
the stage, a darkness stippled with innumerable faces, and quivering
with
the minute oscillation of waved white handkerchiefs and waving
hands.
CHAPTER XVII
THREE DAYS
Lincoln awaited Graham in an apartment beneath the flying stages.
He
seemed curious to learn all that had happened, pleased to hear of
the
extraordinary delight and interest which Graham took in flying.
Graham
was in a mood of enthusiasm. "I must learn to fly," he cried. "I
must
master that. I pity all poor souls who have died without
this
opportunity. The sweet swift air! It is the most wonderful experience
in
the world."
"You will find our new times full of wonderful experiences," said
Lincoln.
"I do not know what you will care to do now. We have music that
may seem
novel."
"For the present," said Graham, "flying holds me. Let me learn more
of
that. Your aeronaut was saying there is some trades union objection
to
one's learning."
"There is, I believe," said Lincoln. "But for you--! If you would like
to
occupy yourself with that, we can make you a sworn aeronaut
to-morrow."
Graham expressed his wishes vividly and talked of his sensations for
a
while. "And as for affairs," he asked abruptly. "How are things
going
on?"
Lincoln waved affairs aside. "Ostrog will tell you that to-morrow,"
he
said. "Everything is settling down. The Revolution accomplishes
itself all
over the world. Friction is inevitable here and there, of
course; but your
rule is assured. You may rest secure with things in
Ostrog's hands."
"Would it be possible for me to be made a sworn aeronaut, as you call
it,
forthwith--before I sleep?" said Graham, pacing. "Then I could be at
it
the very first thing to-morrow again...."
"It would be possible," said Lincoln thoughtfully. "Quite
possible.
Indeed, it shall be done." He laughed. "I came prepared to
suggest
amusements, but you have found one for yourself. I will telephone to
the
aeronautical offices from here and we will return to your apartments
in
the Wind-Vane Control. By the time you have dined the aeronauts will
be
able to come. You don't think that after you have dined you
might
prefer--?" He paused.
"Yes," said Graham.
"We had prepared a show of dancers--they have been brought from the
Capri
theatre."
"I hate ballets," said Graham, shortly. "Always did. That other--.
That's
not what I want to see. We had dancers in the old days. For the matter
of
that, they had them in ancient Egypt. But flying--"
"True," said Lincoln. "Though our dancers--"
"They can afford to wait," said Graham; "they can afford to wait. I
know.
I'm not a Latin. There's questions I want to ask some expert--about
your
machinery. I'm keen. I want no distractions."
"You have the world to choose from," said Lincoln; "whatever you want
is
yours."
Asano appeared, and under the escort of a strong guard they
returned
through the city streets to Graham's apartments. Far larger crowds
had
assembled to witness his return than his departure had gathered,
and
the shouts and cheering of these masses of people sometimes
drowned
Lincoln's answers to the endless questions Graham's aerial journey
had
suggested. At first Graham had acknowledged the cheering and cries
of
the crowd by bows and gestures, but Lincoln warned him that such
a
recognition would be considered incorrect behaviour. Graham, already
a
little wearied by rhythmic civilities, ignored his subjects for
the
remainder of his public progress.
Directly they arrived at his apartments Asano departed in search
of
kinematographic renderings of machinery in motion, and Lincoln
despatched
Graham's commands for models of machines and small machines to
illustrate
the various mechanical advances of the last two centuries. The
little
group of appliances for telegraphic communication attracted the Master
so
strongly that his delightfully prepared dinner, served by a number
of
charmingly dexterous girls, waited for a space. The habit of smoking
had
almost ceased from the face of the earth, but when he expressed a
wish
for that indulgence, enquiries were made and some excellent cigars
were
discovered in Florida, and sent to him by pneumatic despatch while
the
dinner was still in progress. Afterwards came the aeronauts, and a
feast
of ingenious wonders in the hands of a latter-day engineer. For the
time,
at any rate, the neat dexterity of counting and numbering
machines,
building machines, spinning engines, patent doorways, explosive
motors,
grain and water elevators, slaughter-house machines and
harvesting
appliances, was more fascinating to Graham than any bayadère. "We
were
savages," was his refrain, "we were savages. We were in the
stone
age--compared with this.... And what else have you?"
There came also practical psychologists with some very
interesting
developments in the art of hypnotism. The names of Milne
Bramwell,
Fechner, Liebault, William James, Myers and Gurney, he found, bore
a
value now that would have astonished their contemporaries.
Several
practical applications of psychology were now in general use; it
had
largely superseded drugs, antiseptics and anesthetics in medicine;
was
employed by almost all who had any need of mental concentration. A
real
enlargement of human faculty seemed to have been effected in
this
direction. The feats of "calculating boys," the wonders, as Graham
had
been wont to regard them, of mesmerisers, were now within the range
of
anyone who could afford the services of a skilled hypnotist. Long
ago
the old examination methods in education had been destroyed by
these
expedients. Instead of years of study, candidates had substituted a
few
weeks of trances, and during the trances expert coaches had simply
to
repeat all the points necessary for adequate answering, adding
a
suggestion of the post-hypnotic recollection of these points. In
process
mathematics particularly, this aid had been of singular service, and
it
was now invariably invoked by such players of chess and games of
manual
dexterity as were still to be found. In fact, all operations
conducted
under finite rules, of a quasi-mechanical sort that is, were
now
systematically relieved from the wanderings of imagination and
emotion,
and brought to an unexampled pitch of accuracy. Little children of
the
labouring classes, so soon as they were of sufficient age to
be
hypnotised, were thus converted into beautifully punctual
and
trustworthy machine minders, and released forthwith from the long,
long
thoughts of youth. Aeronautical pupils, who gave way to
giddiness,
could be relieved from their imaginary terrors. In every street
were
hypnotists ready to print permanent memories upon the mind. If
anyone
desired to remember a name, a series of numbers, a song or a speech,
it
could be done by this method, and conversely memories could be
effaced,
habits removed, and desires eradicated--a sort of psychic surgery
was,
in fact, in general use. Indignities, humbling experiences, were
thus
forgotten, widows would obliterate their previous husbands, angry
lovers
release themselves from their slavery. To graft desires, however,
was
still impossible, and the facts of thought transference were
yet
unsystematised. The psychologists illustrated their expositions
with
some astounding experiments in mnemonics made through the agency of
a
troupe of pale-faced children in blue.
Graham, like most of the people of his former time, distrusted
the
hypnotist, or he might then and there have eased his mind of many
painful
preoccupations. But in spite of Lincoln's assurances he held to the
old
theory that to be hypnotised was in some way the surrender of
his
personality, the abdication of his will. At the banquet of
wonderful
experiences that was beginning, he wanted very keenly to
remain
absolutely himself.
The next day, and another day, and yet another day passed in
such
interests as these. Each day Graham spent many hours in the
glorious
entertainment of flying. On the third, he soared across middle
France,
and within sight of the snow-clad Alps. These vigorous exercises gave
him
restful sleep; he recovered almost wholly from the spiritless anemia
of
his first awakening. And whenever he was not in the air, and
awake,
Lincoln was assiduous in the cause of his amusement; all that was
novel
and curious in contemporary invention was brought to him, until at
last
his appetite for novelty was well-nigh glutted. One might fill a
dozen
inconsecutive volumes with the strange things they exhibited.
Each
afternoon he held his court for an hour or so. He found his interest
in
his contemporaries becoming personal and intimate. At first he had
been
alert chiefly for unfamiliarity and peculiarity; any foppishness in
their
dress, any discordance with his preconceptions of nobility in
their
status and manners had jarred upon him, and it was remarkable to him
how
soon that strangeness and the faint hostility that arose from
it,
disappeared; how soon he came to appreciate the true perspective of
his
position, and see the old Victorian days remote and quaint. He
found
himself particularly amused by the red-haired daughter of the Manager
of
the European Piggeries. On the second day after dinner he made
the
acquaintance of a latter-day dancing girl, and found her an
astonishing
artist. And after that, more hypnotic wonders. On the third day
Lincoln
was moved to suggest that the Master should repair to a Pleasure
City,
but this Graham declined, nor would he accept the services of
the
hypnotists in his aeronautical experiments. The link of locality held
him
to London; he found a delight in topographical identifications that
he
would have missed abroad. "Here--or a hundred feet below here," he
could
say, "I used to eat my midday cutlets during my London University
days.
Underneath here was Waterloo and the tiresome hunt for confusing
trains.
Often have I stood waiting down there, bag in hand, and stared up
into
the sky above the forest of signals, little thinking I should walk
some
day a hundred yards in the air. And now in that very sky that was once
a
grey smoke canopy, I circle in a monoplane."
During those three days Graham was so occupied with these
distractions
that the vast political movements in progress outside his
quarters had
but a small share of his attention. Those about him told him
little.
Daily came Ostrog, the Boss, his Grand Vizier, his mayor of the
palace,
to report in vague terms the steady establishment of his rule; "a
little
trouble" soon to be settled in this city, "a slight disturbance" in
that.
The song of the social revolt came to him no more; he never learned
that
it had been forbidden in the municipal limits; and all the great
emotions
of the crow's nest slumbered in his mind.
But on the second and third of the three days he found himself, in
spite
of his interest in the daughter of the Pig Manager, or it may be
by
reason of the thoughts her conversation suggested, remembering the
girl
Helen Wotton, who had spoken to him so oddly at the Wind-Vane
Keeper's
gathering. The impression, she had made was a deep one, albeit
the
incessant surprise of novel circumstances had kept him from brooding
upon
it for a space. But now her memory was coming to its own. He
wondered
what she had meant by those broken half-forgotten sentences; the
picture
of her eyes and the earnest passion of her face became more vivid as
his
mechanical interests faded. Her slender beauty came compellingly
between
him and certain immediate temptations of ignoble passion. But he did
not
see her again until three full days were past.
CHAPTER XVIII
GRAHAM REMEMBERS
She came upon him at last in a little gallery that ran from the
Wind-Vane
Offices toward his state apartments. The gallery was long and
narrow,
with a series of recesses, each with an arched fenestration that
looked
upon a court of palms. He came upon her suddenly in one of
these
recesses. She was seated. She turned her head at the sound of
his
footsteps and started at the sight of him. Every touch of colour
vanished
from her face. She rose instantly, made a step toward him as if
to
address him, and hesitated. He stopped and stood still, expectant.
Then
he perceived that a nervous tumult silenced her, perceived, too, that
she
must have sought speech with him to be waiting for him in this place.
He felt a regal impulse to assist her. "I have wanted to see you,"
he
said. "A few days ago you wanted to tell me something--you wanted to
tell
me of the people. What was it you had to tell me?"
She looked at him with troubled eyes.
"You said the people were unhappy?"
For a moment she was silent still.
"It must have seemed strange to you," she said abruptly.
"It did. And yet--"
"It was an impulse."
"Well?"
"That is all."
She looked at him with a face of hesitation. She spoke with an
effort.
"You forget," she said, drawing a deep breath.
"What?"
"The people--"
"Do you mean--?"
"You forget the people."
He looked interrogative.
"Yes. I know you are surprised. For you do not understand what you
are.
You do not know the things that are happening."
"Well?"
"You do not understand."
"Not clearly, perhaps. But--tell me."
She turned to him with sudden resolution. "It is so hard to explain.
I
have meant to, I have wanted to. And now--I cannot. I am not ready
with
words. But about you--there is something. It is wonder. Your
sleep--your
awakening. These things are miracles. To me at least--and to all
the
common people. You who lived and suffered and died, you who were
a
common citizen, wake again, live again, to find yourself Master
almost
of the earth."
"Master of the earth," he said. "So they tell me. But try and imagine
how
little I know of it."
"Cities--Trusts--the Labour Department--"
"Principalities, powers, dominions--the power and the glory. Yes, I
have
heard them shout. I know. I am Master. King, if you wish. With
Ostrog,
the Boss--"
He paused.
She turned upon him and surveyed his face with a curious
scrutiny.
"Well?"
He smiled. "To take the responsibility."
"That is what we have begun to fear." For a moment she said no more.
"No,"
she said slowly. "_You_ will take the responsibility. You will take
the
responsibility. The people look to you."
She spoke softly. "Listen! For at least half the years of your
sleep--in
every generation--multitudes of people, in every generation
greater
multitudes of people, have prayed that you might
awake--_prayed_."
Graham moved to speak and did not.
She hesitated, and a faint colour crept back to her cheek. "Do you
know
that you have been to myriads--King Arthur, Barbarossa--the King
who
would come in his own good time and put the world right for them?"
"I suppose the imagination of the people--"
"Have you not heard our proverb, 'When the Sleeper wakes'? While you
lay
insensible and motionless there--thousands came. Thousands. Every
first
of the month you lay in state with a white robe upon you and the
people
filed by you. When I was a little girl I saw you like that, with
your
face white and calm."
She turned her face from him and looked steadfastly at the painted
wall
before her. Her voice fell. "When I was a little girl I used to
look at your
face.... It seemed to me fixed and waiting, like the
patience of God."
"That is what we thought of you," she said. "That is how you
seemed to
us."
She turned shining eyes to him, her voice was clear and strong. "In
the
city, in the earth, a myriad myriad men and women are waiting to see
what
you will do, full of strange incredible expectations."
"Yes?"
"Ostrog--no one--can take that responsibility."
Graham looked at her in surprise, at her face lit with emotion. She
seemed
at first to have spoken with an effort, and to have fired herself
by
speaking.
"Do you think," she said, "that you who have lived that little life so
far
away in the past, you who have fallen into and risen out of this
miracle of
sleep--do you think that the wonder and reverence and hope of
half the world
has gathered about you only that you may live another
little life?... That
you may shift the responsibility to any other man?"
"I know how great this kingship of mine is," he said haltingly. "I
know
how great it seems. But is it real? It is incredible--dreamlike. Is
it
real, or is it only a great delusion?"
"It is real," she said; "if you dare."
"After all, like all kingship, my kingship is Belief. It is an illusion
in
the minds of men."
"If you dare!" she said.
"But--"
"Countless men," she said, "and while it is in their minds--they
will
obey."
"But I know nothing. That is what I had in mind. I know nothing. And
these
others--the Councillors, Ostrog. They are wiser, cooler, they know
so much,
every detail. And, indeed, what are these miseries of which you
speak? What
am I to know? Do you mean--"
He stopped blankly.
"I am still hardly more than a girl," she said. "But to me the world
seems
full of wretchedness. The world has altered since your day, altered
very
strangely. I have prayed that I might see you and tell you these
things. The
world has changed. As if a canker had seized it--and robbed
life
of--everything worth having."
She turned a flushed face upon him, moving suddenly. "Your days were
the
days of freedom. Yes--I have thought. I have been made to think, for
my
life--has not been happy. Men are no longer free--no greater, no
better
than the men of your time. That is not all. This city--is a prison.
Every
city now is a prison. Mammon grips the key in his hand.
Myriads,
countless myriads, toil from the cradle to the grave. Is that right?
Is
that to be--for ever? Yes, far worse than in your time. All about
us,
beneath us, sorrow and pain. All the shallow delight of such life as
you
find about you, is separated by just a little from a life of
wretchedness
beyond any telling. Yes, the poor know it--they know they
suffer. These
countless multitudes who faced death for you two nights
since--! You owe
your life to them."
"Yes," said Graham, slowly. "Yes. I owe my life to them."
"You come," she said, "from the days when this new tyranny of the
cities
was scarcely beginning. It is a tyranny--a tyranny. In your days
the
feudal war lords had gone, and the new lordship of wealth had still
to
come. Half the men in the world still lived out upon the
free
countryside. The cities had still to devour them. I have heard
the
stories out of the old books--there was nobility! Common men led lives
of
love and faithfulness then--they did a thousand things. And you--you
come
from that time."
"It was not--. But never mind. How is it now--?"
"Gain and the Pleasure Cities! Or slavery--unthanked,
unhonoured,
slavery."
"Slavery!" he said.
"Slavery."
"You don't mean to say that human beings are chattels."
"Worse. That is what I want you to know, what I want you to see. I
know
you do not know. They will keep things from you, they will take
you
presently to a Pleasure City. But you have noticed men and women
and
children in pale blue canvas, with thin yellow faces and dull eyes?"
"Everywhere."
"Speaking a horrible dialect, coarse and weak."
"I have heard it."
"They are the slaves--your slaves. They are the slaves of the
Labour
Department you own."
"The Labour Department! In some way--that is familiar. Ah! now I
remember.
I saw it when I was wandering about the city, after the
lights returned,
great fronts of buildings coloured pale blue. Do you
really mean--?"
"Yes. How can I explain it to you? Of course the blue uniform struck
you.
Nearly a third of our people wear it--more assume it now every day.
This
Labour Department has grown imperceptibly."
"What _is_ this Labour Department?" asked Graham.
"In the old times, how did you manage with starving people?"
"There was the workhouse--which the parishes maintained."
"Workhouse! Yes--there was something. In our history lessons. I
remember
now. The Labour Department ousted the workhouse. It
grew--partly--out of
something--you, perhaps, may remember it--an emotional
religious
organisation called the Salvation Army--that became a business
company.
In the first place it was almost a charity. To save people from
workhouse
rigours. There had been a great agitation against the workhouse.
Now I
come to think of it, it was one of the earliest properties your
Trustees
acquired. They bought the Salvation Army and reconstructed it as
this.
The idea in the first place was to organise the labour of
starving
homeless people."
"Yes."
"Nowadays there are no workhouses, no refuges and charities, nothing
but
that Department. Its offices are everywhere. That blue is its colour.
And
any man, woman or child who comes to be hungry and weary and with
neither
home nor friend nor resort, must go to the Department in the end--or
seek
some way of death. The Euthanasy is beyond their means--for the
poor
there is no easy death. And at any hour in the day or night there
is
food, shelter and a blue uniform for all comers--that is the
first
condition of the Department's incorporation--and in return for a
day's
shelter the Department extracts a day's work, and then returns
the
visitor's proper clothing and sends him or her out again."
"Yes?"
"Perhaps that does not seem so terrible to you. In your time men
starved
in your streets. That was bad. But they died--_men_. These people
in
blue--. The proverb runs: 'Blue canvas once and ever.' The
Department
trades in their labour, and it has taken care to assure itself of
the
supply. People come to it starving and helpless--they eat and sleep for
a
night and day, they work for a day, and at the end of the day they
go
out again. If they have worked well they have a penny or so--enough for
a
theatre or a cheap dancing place, or a kinematograph story, or a
dinner
or a bet. They wander about after that is spent. Begging is prevented
by
the police of the ways. Besides, no one gives. They come back again
the
next day or the day after--brought back by the same incapacity
that
brought them first. At last their proper clothing wears out, or
their
rags get so shabby that they are ashamed. Then they must work for
months
to get fresh. If they want fresh. A great number of children are
born
under the Department's care. The mother owes them a month
thereafter--the
children they cherish and educate until they are fourteen,
and they pay
two years' service. You may be sure these children are educated
for the
blue canvas. And so it is the Department works."
"And none are destitute in the city?"
"None. They are either in blue canvas or in prison. We have
abolished
destitution. It is engraved upon the Department's checks."
"If they will not work?"
"Most people will work at that pitch, and the Department has powers.
There
are stages of unpleasantness in the work--stoppage of food--and a
man or
woman who has refused to work once is known by a thumb-marking
system in the
Department's offices all over the world. Besides, who can
leave the city
poor? To go to Paris costs two Lions. And for
insubordination there are the
prisons--dark and miserable--out of sight
below. There are prisons now for
many things."
"And a third of the people wear this blue canvas?"
"More than a third. Toilers, living without pride or delight or hope,
with
the stories of Pleasure Cities ringing in their ears, mocking their
shameful
lives, their privations and hardships. Too poor even for the
Euthanasy, the
rich man's refuge from life. Dumb, crippled millions,
countless millions, all
the world about, ignorant of anything but
limitations and unsatisfied
desires. They are born, they are thwarted and
they die. That is the state to
which we have come."
For a space Graham sat downcast.
"But there has been a revolution," he said. "All these things will
be
changed. Ostrog--"
"That is our hope. That is the hope of the world. But Ostrog will not
do
it. He is a politician. To him it seems things must be like this.
He
does not mind. He takes it for granted. All the rich, all
the
influential, all who are happy, come at last to take these miseries
for
granted. They use the people in their politics, they live in ease
by
their degradation. But you--you who come from a happier age--it is
to
you the people look. To you."
He looked at her face. Her eyes were bright with unshed tears. He felt
a
rush of emotion. For a moment he forgot this city, he forgot the
race, and
all those vague remote voices, in the immediate humanity of
her beauty.
"But what am I to do?" he said with his eyes upon her.
"Rule," she answered, bending towards him and speaking in a low
tone.
"Rule the world as it has never been ruled, for the good and happiness
of
men. For you might rule it--you could rule it.
"The people are stirring. All over the world the people are stirring.
It
wants but a word--but a word from you--to bring them all together.
Even
the middle sort of people are restless--unhappy.
"They are not telling you the things that are happening. The people
will
not go back to their drudgery--they refuse to be disarmed. Ostrog
has
awakened something greater than he dreamt of--he has awakened hopes."
His heart was beating fast. He tried to seem judicial, to
weigh
considerations.
"They only want their leader," she said.
"And then?"
"You could do what you would;--the world is yours."
He sat, no longer regarding her. Presently he spoke. "The old dreams,
and
the thing I have dreamt, liberty, happiness. Are they dreams? Could
one
man--_one man_--?" His voice sank and ceased.
"Not one man, but all men--give them only a leader to speak the desire
of
their hearts."
He shook his head, and for a time there was silence.
He looked up suddenly, and their eyes met. "I have not your faith,"
he
said, "I have not your youth. I am here with power that mocks me.
No--let
me speak. I want to do--not right--I have not the strength for
that--but
something rather right than wrong. It will bring no millennium, but
I am
resolved now, that I will rule. What you have said has awakened me...
You
are right. Ostrog must know his place. And I will learn--.... One thing
I
promise you. This Labour slavery shall end."
"And you will rule?"
"Yes. Provided--. There is one thing."
"Yes?"
"That you will help me."
"_I_--a girl!"
"Yes. Does it not occur to you I am absolutely alone?"
She started and for an instant her eyes had pity. "Need you ask whether
I
will help you?" she said.
There came a tense silence, and then the beating of a clock striking
the
hour. Graham rose.
"Even now," he said, "Ostrog will be waiting." He hesitated, facing
her.
"When I have asked him certain questions--. There is much I do not
know.
It may be, that I will go to see with my own eyes the things of which
you
have spoken. And when I return--?"
"I shall know of your going and coming. I will wait for you here again."
They regarded one another steadfastly, questioningly, and then he
turned
from her towards the Wind-Vane office.
CHAPTER XIX
OSTROG'S POINT OF VIEW
Graham found Ostrog waiting to give a formal account of his
day's
stewardship. On previous occasions he had passed over this ceremony
as
speedily as possible, in order to resume his aerial experiences, but
now
he began to ask quick short questions. He was very anxious to take up
his
empire forthwith. Ostrog brought flattering reports of the development
of
affairs abroad. In Paris and Berlin, Graham perceived that he was
saying,
there had been trouble, not organised resistance indeed,
but
insubordinate proceedings. "After all these years," said Ostrog,
when
Graham pressed enquiries; "the Commune has lifted its head again. That
is
the real nature of the struggle, to be explicit." But order had
been
restored in these cities. Graham, the more deliberately judicial for
the
stirring emotions he felt, asked if there had been any fighting.
"A
little," said Ostrog. "In one quarter only. But the Senegalese
division
of our African agricultural police--the Consolidated African
Companies
have a very well drilled police--was ready, and so were the
aeroplanes.
We expected a little trouble in the continental cities, and in
America.
But things are very quiet in America. They are satisfied with
the
overthrow of the Council. For the time."
"Why should you expect trouble?" asked Graham abruptly.
"There is a lot of discontent--social discontent."
"The Labour Department?"
"You are learning," said Ostrog with a touch of surprise. "Yes. It
is
chiefly the discontent with the Labour Department. It was that
discontent
supplied the motive force of this overthrow--that and your
awakening."
"Yes?"
Ostrog smiled. He became explicit. "We had to stir up their discontent,
we
had to revive the old ideals of universal happiness--all men
equal--all men
happy--no luxury that everyone may not share--ideas that
have slumbered for
two hundred years. You know that? We had to revive
these ideals, impossible
as they are--in order to overthrow the Council.
And now--"
"Well?"
"Our revolution is accomplished, and the Council is overthrown, and
people
whom we have stirred up--remain surging. There was scarcely
enough
fighting.... We made promises, of course. It is extraordinary
how
violently and rapidly this vague out-of-date humanitarianism has
revived
and spread. We who sowed the seed even, have been astonished. In
Paris,
as I say--we have had to call in a little external help."
"And here?"
"There is trouble. Multitudes will not go back to work. There is a
general
strike. Half the factories are empty and the people are swarming
in the ways.
They are talking of a Commune. Men in silk and satin have
been insulted in
the streets. The blue canvas is expecting all sorts of
things from you.... Of
course there is no need for you to trouble. We are
setting the Babble
Machines to work with counter suggestions in the
cause of law and order. We
must keep the grip tight; that is all."
Graham thought. He perceived a way of asserting himself. But he spoke
with
restraint.
"Even to the pitch of bringing a negro police," he said.
"They are useful," said Ostrog. "They are fine loyal brutes, with no
wash
of ideas in their heads--such as our rabble has. The Council should
have
had them as police of the ways, and things might have been different.
Of
course, there is nothing to fear except rioting and wreckage. You
can
manage your own wings now, and you can soar away to Capri if there is
any
smoke or fuss. We have the pull of all the great things; the
aeronauts
are privileged and rich, the closest trades union in the world, and
so
are the engineers of the wind-vanes. We have the air, and the mastery
of
the air is the mastery of the earth. No one of any ability is
organising
against us. They have no leaders--only the sectional leaders of
the
secret society we organised before your very opportune awakening.
Mere
busybodies and sentimentalists they are and bitterly jealous of
each
other. None of them is man enough for a central figure. The only
trouble
will be a disorganised upheaval. To be frank--that may happen. But
it
won't interrupt your aeronautics. The days when the People could
make
revolutions are past."
"I suppose they are," said Graham. "I suppose they are." He mused.
"This
world of yours has been full of surprises to me. In the old days
we
dreamt of a wonderful democratic life, of a time when all men would
be
equal and happy."
Ostrog looked at him steadfastly. "The day of democracy is past," he
said.
"Past for ever. That day began with the bowmen of Creçy, it ended
when
marching infantry, when common men in masses ceased to win the
battles of the
world, when costly cannon, great ironclads, and strategic
railways became the
means of power. To-day is the day of wealth. Wealth
now is power as it never
was power before--it commands earth and sea and
sky. All power is for those
who can handle wealth. On your behalf.... You
must accept facts, and these
are facts. The world for the Crowd! The
Crowd as Ruler! Even in your days
that creed had been tried and
condemned. To-day it has only one believer--a
multiplex, silly one--the
man in the Crowd."
Graham did not answer immediately. He stood lost in
sombre
preoccupations.
"No," said Ostrog. "The day of the common man is past. On the
open
countryside one man is as good as another, or nearly as good. The
earlier
aristocracy had a precarious tenure of strength and audacity. They
were
tempered--tempered. There were insurrections, duels, riots. The
first
real aristocracy, the first permanent aristocracy, came in with
castles
and armour, and vanished before the musket and bow. But this is
the
second aristocracy. The real one. Those days of gunpowder and
democracy
were only an eddy in the stream. The common man now is a helpless
unit.
In these days we have this great machine of the city, and an
organisation
complex beyond his understanding."
"Yet," said Graham, "there is something resists, something you are
holding
down--something that stirs and presses."
"You will see," said Ostrog, with a forced smile that would brush
these
difficult questions aside. "I have not roused the force to
destroy
myself--trust me."
"I wonder," said Graham.
Ostrog stared.
"_Must_ the world go this way?" said Graham with his emotions at
the
speaking point. "Must it indeed go in this way? Have all our
hopes
been vain?"
"What do you mean?" said Ostrog. "Hopes?"
"I come from a democratic age. And I find an aristocratic tyranny!"
"Well,--but you are the chief tyrant."
Graham shook his head.
"Well," said Ostrog, "take the general question. It is the way that
change
has always travelled. Aristocracy, the prevalence of the best--the
suffering
and extinction of the unfit, and so to better things."
"But aristocracy! those people I met--"
"Oh! not _those_!" said Ostrog. "But for the most part they go to
their
death. Vice and pleasure! They have no children. That sort of stuff
will
die out. If the world keeps to one road, that is, if there is no
turning
back. An easy road to excess, convenient Euthanasia for the
pleasure
seekers singed in the flame, that is the way to improve the
race!"
"Pleasant extinction," said Graham. "Yet--." He thought for an
instant.
"There is that other thing--the Crowd, the great mass of poor men.
Will
that die out? That will not die out. And it suffers, its suffering is
a
force that even you--"
Ostrog moved impatiently, and when he spoke, he spoke rather less
evenly
than before.
"Don't trouble about these things," he said. "Everything will be
settled
in a few days now. The Crowd is a huge foolish beast. What if
it does not die
out? Even if it does not die, it can still be tamed and
driven. I have no
sympathy with servile men. You heard those people
shouting and singing two
nights ago. They were _taught_ that song. If
you had taken any man there in
cold blood and asked why he shouted, he
could not have told you. They think
they are shouting for you, that
they are loyal and devoted to you. Just then
they were ready to
slaughter the Council. To-day--they are already murmuring
against those
who have overthrown the Council."
"No, no," said Graham. "They shouted because their lives were
dreary,
without joy or pride, and because in me--in me--they hoped."
"And what was their hope? What is their hope? What right have they
to
hope? They work ill and they want the reward of those who work well.
The
hope of mankind--what is it? That some day the Over-man may come,
that
some day the inferior, the weak and the bestial may be subdued
or
eliminated. Subdued if not eliminated. The world is no place for the
bad,
the stupid, the enervated. Their duty--it's a fine duty too!--is to
die.
The death of the failure! That is the path by which the beast rose
to
manhood, by which man goes on to higher things."
Ostrog took a pace, seemed to think, and turned on Graham. "I can
imagine
how this great world state of ours seems to a Victorian Englishman.
You
regret all the old forms of representative government--their
spectres
still haunt the world, the voting councils, and parliaments and all
that
eighteenth century tomfoolery. You feel moved against our
Pleasure
Cities. I might have thought of that,--had I not been busy. But you
will
learn better. The people are mad with envy--they would be in
sympathy
with you. Even in the streets now, they clamour to destroy the
Pleasure
Cities. But the Pleasure Cities are the excretory organs of the
State,
attractive places that year after year draw together all that is weak
and
vicious, all that is lascivious and lazy, all the easy roguery of
the
world, to a graceful destruction. They go there, they have their
time,
they die childless, all the pretty silly lascivious women die
childless,
and mankind is the better. If the people were sane they would not
envy
the rich their way of death. And you would emancipate the silly
brainless
workers that we have enslaved, and try to make their lives easy
and
pleasant again. Just as they have sunk to what they are fit for."
He
smiled a smile that irritated Graham oddly. "You will learn better.
I
know those ideas; in my boyhood I read your Shelley and dreamt
of
Liberty. There is no liberty, save wisdom and self-control. Liberty
is
within--not without. It is each man's own affair. Suppose--which
is
impossible--that these swarming yelping fools in blue get the upper
hand
of us, what then? They will only fall to other masters. So long as
there
are sheep Nature will insist on beasts of prey. It would mean but a
few
hundred years' delay. The coming of the aristocrat is fatal and
assured.
The end will be the Over-man--for all the mad protests of humanity.
Let
them revolt, let them win and kill me and my like. Others
will
arise--other masters. The end will be the same."
"I wonder," said Graham doggedly.
For a moment he stood downcast.
"But I must see these things for myself," he said, suddenly assuming
a
tone of confident mastery. "Only by seeing can I understand. I
must
learn. That is what I want to tell you, Ostrog. I do not want to be
King
in a Pleasure City; that is not my pleasure. I have spent enough
time
with aeronautics--and those other things. I must learn how people
live
now, how the common life has developed. Then I shall understand
these
things better. I must learn how common people live--the labour
people
more especially--how they work, marry, bear children, die--"
"You get that from our realistic novelists," suggested Ostrog,
suddenly
preoccupied.
"I want reality," said Graham.
"There are difficulties," said Ostrog, and thought. "On the whole--"
"I did not expect--"
"I had thought--. And yet perhaps--. You say you want to go through
the
ways of the city and see the common people."
Suddenly he came to some conclusion. "You would need to go disguised,"
he
said. "The city is intensely excited, and the discovery of your
presence
among them might create a fearful tumult. Still this wish of yours
to go
into this city--this idea of yours--. Yes, now I think the thing over,
it
seems to me not altogether--. It can be contrived. If you would
really
find an interest in that! You are, of course, Master. You can go soon
if
you like. A disguise Asano will be able to manage. He would go with
you.
After all it is not a bad idea of yours."
"You will not want to consult me in any matter?" asked Graham
suddenly,
struck by an odd suspicion.
"Oh, dear no! No! I think you may trust affairs to me for a time, at
any
rate," said Ostrog, smiling. "Even if we differ--"
Graham glanced at him sharply.
"There is no fighting likely to happen soon?" he asked abruptly.
"Certainly not."
"I have been thinking about these negroes. I don't believe the
people
intend any hostility to me, and, after all, I am the Master. I do
not
want any negroes brought to London. It is an archaic prejudice
perhaps,
but I have peculiar feelings about Europeans and the subject races.
Even
about Paris--"
Ostrog stood watching him from under his drooping brows. "I am
not
bringing negroes to London," he said slowly. "But if--"
"You are not to bring armed negroes to London, whatever happens,"
said
Graham. "In that matter I am quite decided."
Ostrog resolved not to speak, and bowed deferentially.
CHAPTER XX
IN THE CITY WAYS
And that night, unknown and unsuspected, Graham, dressed in the
costume
of an inferior wind-vane official keeping holiday, and accompanied
by
Asano in Labour Department canvas, surveyed the city through which he
had
wandered when it was veiled in darkness. But now he saw it lit
and
waking, a whirlpool of life. In spite of the surging and swaying of
the
forces of revolution, in spite of the unusual discontent, the
mutterings
of the greater struggle of which the first revolt was but the
prelude,
the myriad streams of commerce still flowed wide and strong. He knew
now
something of the dimensions and quality of the new age, but he was
not
prepared for the infinite surprise of the detailed view, for the
torrent
of colour and vivid impressions that poured past him.
This was his first real contact with the people of these latter days.
He
realised that all that had gone before, saving his glimpses of the
public
theatres and markets, had had its element of seclusion, had been
a
movement within the comparatively narrow political quarter, that all
his
previous experiences had revolved immediately about the question of
his
own position. But here was the city at the busiest hours of night,
the
people to a large extent returned to their own immediate interests,
the
resumption of the real informal life, the common habits of the new
time.
They emerged at first into a street whose opposite ways were crowded
with
the blue canvas liveries. This swarm Graham saw was a portion of
a
procession--it was odd to see a procession parading the city
_seated_.
They carried banners of coarse black stuff with red letters.
"No
disarmament," said the banners, for the most part in crudely
daubed
letters and with variant spelling, and "Why should we disarm?"
"No
disarming." "No disarming." Banner after banner went by, a stream
of
banners flowing past, and at last at the end, the song of the revolt
and
a noisy band of strange instruments. "They all ought to be at work,"
said
Asano. "They have had no food these two days, or they have stolen
it."
Presently Asano made a detour to avoid the congested crowd that gaped
upon
the occasional passage of dead bodies from hospital to a mortuary,
the
gleanings after death's harvest of the first revolt.
That night few people were sleeping, everyone was abroad. A
vast
excitement, perpetual crowds perpetually changing, surrounded Graham;
his
mind was confused and darkened by an incessant tumult, by the cries
and
enigmatical fragments of the social struggle that was as yet
only
beginning. Everywhere festoons and banners of black and
strange
decorations, intensified the quality of his popularity. Everywhere
he
caught snatches of that crude thick dialect that served the
illiterate
class, the class, that is, beyond the reach of phonograph culture,
in
their commonplace intercourse. Everywhere this trouble of disarmament
was
in the air, with a quality of immediate stress of which he had no
inkling
during his seclusion in the Wind-Vane quarter. He perceived that as
soon
as he returned he must discuss this with Ostrog, this and the
greater
issues of which it was the expression, in a far more conclusive way
than
he had so far done. Perpetually that night, even in the earlier hours
of
their wanderings about the city, the spirit of unrest and revolt
swamped
his attention, to the exclusion of countless strange things he
might
otherwise have observed.
This preoccupation made his impressions fragmentary. Yet amidst so
much
that was strange and vivid, no subject, however personal and
insistent,
could exert undivided sway. There were spaces when the
revolutionary
movement passed clean out of his mind, was drawn aside like a
curtain
from before some startling new aspect of the time. Helen had swayed
his
mind to this intense earnestness of enquiry, but there came times
when
she, even, receded beyond his conscious thoughts. At one moment,
for
example, he found they were traversing the religious quarter, for
the
easy transit about the city afforded by the moving ways rendered
sporadic
churches and chapels no longer necessary--and his attention was
vividly
arrested by the façade of one of the Christian sects.
They were travelling seated on one of the swift upper ways, the
place
leapt upon them at a bend and advanced rapidly towards them. It
was
covered with inscriptions from top to base, in vivid white and blue,
save
where a vast and glaring kinematograph transparency presented a
realistic
New Testament scene, and where a vast festoon of black to show that
the
popular religion followed the popular politics, hung across
the
lettering. Graham had already become familiar with the phonotype
writing
and these inscriptions arrested him, being to his sense for the most
part
almost incredible blasphemy. Among the less offensive were "Salvation
on
the First Floor and turn to the Right." "Put your Money on your
Maker."
"The Sharpest Conversion in London, Expert Operators! Look Slippy!"
"What
Christ would say to the Sleeper;--Join the Up-to-date Saints!" "Be
a
Christian--without hindrance to your present Occupation." "All
the
Brightest Bishops on the Bench to-night and Prices as Usual."
"Brisk
Blessings for Busy Business Men."
"But this is appalling!" said Graham, as that deafening scream
of
mercantile piety towered above them.
"What is appalling?" asked his little officer, apparently seeking
vainly
for anything unusual in this shrieking enamel.
"_This_! Surely the essence of religion is reverence."
"Oh _that_!" Asano looked at Graham. "Does it shock you?" he said in
the
tone of one who makes a discovery. "I suppose it would, of course. I
had
forgotten. Nowadays the competition for attention is so keen, and
people
simply haven't the leisure to attend to their souls, you know, as
they
used to do." He smiled. "In the old days you had quiet Sabbaths and
the
countryside. Though somewhere I've read of Sunday afternoons that--"
"But _that_," said Graham, glancing back at the receding blue and
white.
"That is surely not the only--"
"There are hundreds of different ways. But, of course, if a sect
doesn't
_tell_ it doesn't pay. Worship has moved with the times. There are
high
class sects with quieter ways--costly incense and personal
attentions
and all that. These people are extremely popular and prosperous.
They
pay several dozen lions for those apartments to the Council--to you,
I
should say."
Graham still felt a difficulty with the coinage, and this mention of
a
dozen lions brought him abruptly to that matter. In a moment
the
screaming temples and their swarming touts were forgotten in this
new
interest. A turn of a phrase suggested, and an answer confirmed the
idea
that gold and silver were both demonetised, that stamped gold which
had
begun its reign amidst the merchants of Phoenicia was at last
dethroned.
The change had been graduated but swift, brought about by an
extension of
the system of cheques that had even in his previous life
already
practically superseded gold in all the larger business transactions.
The
common traffic of the city, the common currency indeed of all the
world,
was conducted by means of the little brown, green and pink
council
cheques for small amounts, printed with a blank payee. Asano had
several
with him, and at the first opportunity he supplied the gaps in his
set.
They were printed not on tearable paper, but on a semi-transparent
fabric
of silken flexibility, interwoven with silk. Across them all sprawled
a
facsimile of Graham's signature, his first encounter with the curves
and
turns of that familiar autograph for two hundred and three years.
Some intermediary experiences made no impression sufficiently vivid
to
prevent the matter of the disarmament claiming his thoughts again;
a
blurred picture of a Theosophist temple that promised MIRACLES
in
enormous letters of unsteady fire was least submerged perhaps, but
then
came the view of the dining hall in Northumberland Avenue.
That
interested him very greatly.
By the energy and thought of Asano he was able to view this place from
a
little screened gallery reserved for the attendants of the tables.
The
building was pervaded by a distant muffled hooting, piping and
bawling,
of which he did not at first understand the import, but which
recalled a
certain mysterious leathery voice he had heard after the
resumption of
the lights on the night of his solitary wandering.
He had grown accustomed to vastness and great numbers of
people,
nevertheless this spectacle held him for a long time. It was as
he
watched the table service more immediately beneath, and
interspersed
with many questions and answers concerning details, that
the
realisation of the full significance of the feast of several
thousand
people came to him.
It was his constant surprise to find that points that one might
have
expected to strike vividly at the very outset never occurred to him
until
some trivial detail suddenly shaped as a riddle and pointed to
the
obvious thing he had overlooked. He discovered only now that
this
continuity of the city, this exclusion of weather, these vast halls
and
ways, involved the disappearance of the household; that the
typical
Victorian "Home," the little brick cell containing kitchen and
scullery,
living rooms and bedrooms, had, save for the ruins that diversified
the
countryside, vanished as surely as the wattle hut. But now he saw
what
had indeed been manifest from the first, that London, regarded as
a
living place, was no longer an aggregation of houses but a
prodigious
hotel, an hotel with a thousand classes of accommodation,
thousands of
dining halls, chapels, theatres, markets and places of assembly,
a
synthesis of enterprises, of which he chiefly was the owner. People
had
their sleeping rooms, with, it might be, antechambers, rooms that
were
always sanitary at least whatever the degree of comfort and privacy,
and
for the rest they lived much as many people had lived in the
new-made
giant hotels of the Victorian days, eating, reading, thinking,
playing,
conversing, all in places of public resort, going to their work in
the
industrial quarters of the city or doing business in their offices in
the
trading section.
He perceived at once how necessarily this state of affairs had
developed
from the Victorian city. The fundamental reason for the modern city
had
ever been the economy of co-operation. The chief thing to prevent
the
merging of the separate households in his own generation was simply
the
still imperfect civilisation of the people, the strong barbaric
pride,
passions, and prejudices, the jealousies, rivalries, and violence of
the
middle and lower classes, which had necessitated the entire separation
of
contiguous households. But the change, the taming of the people, had
been
in rapid progress even then. In his brief thirty years of previous
life
he had seen an enormous extension of the habit of consuming meals
from
home, the casually patronised horse-box coffee-house had given place
to
the open and crowded Aerated Bread Shop for instance, women's clubs
had
had their beginning, and an immense development of reading rooms,
lounges
and libraries had witnessed to the growth of social confidence.
These
promises had by this time attained to their complete fulfilment.
The
locked and barred household had passed away.
These people below him belonged, he learnt, to the lower middle class,
the
class just above the blue labourers, a class so accustomed in the
Victorian
period to feed with every precaution of privacy that its
members, when
occasion confronted them with a public meal, would usually
hide their
embarrassment under horseplay or a markedly militant
demeanour. But these
gaily, if lightly dressed people below, albeit
vivacious, hurried and
uncommunicative, were dexterously mannered and
certainly quite at their ease
with regard to one another.
He noted a slight significant thing; the table, as far as he could
see,
was and remained delightfully neat, there was nothing to parallel
the
confusion, the broadcast crumbs, the splashes of viand and condiment,
the
overturned drink and displaced ornaments, which would have marked
the
stormy progress of the Victorian meal. The table furniture was
very
different. There were no ornaments, no flowers, and the table was
without
a cloth, being made, he learnt, of a solid substance having the
texture
and appearance of damask. He discerned that this damask substance
was
patterned with gracefully designed trade advertisements.
In a sort of recess before each diner was a complex apparatus of
porcelain
and metal. There was one plate of white porcelain, and by means
of taps for
hot and cold volatile fluids the diner washed this himself
between the
courses; he also washed his elegant white metal knife and
fork and spoon as
occasion required.
Soup and the chemical wine that was the common drink were delivered
by
similar taps, and the remaining covers travelled automatically
in
tastefully arranged dishes down the table along silver rails. The
diner
stopped these and helped himself at his discretion. They appeared at
a
little door at one end of the table, and vanished at the other. That
turn
of democratic sentiment in decay, that ugly pride of menial souls,
which
renders equals loth to wait on one another, was very strong he
found
among these people. He was so preoccupied with these details that it
was
only as he was leaving the place that he remarked the huge
advertisement
dioramas that marched majestically along the upper walls and
proclaimed
the most remarkable commodities.
Beyond this place they came into a crowded hall, and he discovered
the
cause of the noise that had perplexed him. They paused at a turnstile
at
which a payment was made.
Graham's attention was immediately arrested by a violent, loud
hoot,
followed by a vast leathery voice. "The Master is sleeping
peacefully,"
it vociferated. "He is in excellent health. He is going to
devote the
rest of his life to aeronautics. He says women are more beautiful
than
ever. Galloop! Wow! Our wonderful civilisation astonishes him
beyond
measure. Beyond all measure. Galloop. He puts great trust in
Boss
Ostrog, absolute confidence in Boss Ostrog. Ostrog is to be his
chief
minister; is authorised to remove or reinstate public
officers--all
patronage will be in his hands. All patronage in the hands of
Boss
Ostrog! The Councillors have been sent back to their own prison
above
the Council House."
Graham stopped at the first sentence, and, looking up, beheld a
foolish
trumpet face from which this was brayed. This was the
General
Intelligence Machine. For a space it seemed to be gathering breath,
and a
regular throbbing from its cylindrical body was audible. Then
it
trumpeted "Galloop, Galloop," and broke out again.
"Paris is now pacified. All resistance is over. Galloop! The black
police
hold every position of importance in the city. They fought with
great
bravery, singing songs written in praise of their ancestors by the
poet
Kipling. Once or twice they got out of hand, and tortured and
mutilated
wounded and captured insurgents, men and women. Moral--don't
go
rebelling. Haha! Galloop, Galloop! They are lively fellows. Lively
brave
fellows. Let this be a lesson to the disorderly banderlog of this
city.
Yah! Banderlog! Filth of the earth! Galloop, Galloop!"
The voice ceased. There was a confused murmur of disapproval among
the
crowd. "Damned niggers." A man began to harangue near them. "Is this
the
Master's doing, brothers? Is this the Master's doing?"
"Black police!" said Graham. "What is that? You don't mean--"
Asano touched his arm and gave him a warning look, and forthwith
another
of these mechanisms screamed deafeningly and gave tongue in a
shrill
voice. "Yahaha, Yahah, Yap! Hear a live paper yelp! Live paper.
Yaha!
Shocking outrage in Paris. Yahahah! The Parisians exasperated by
the
black police to the pitch of assassination. Dreadful reprisals.
Savage
times come again. Blood! Blood! Yaha!" The nearer Babble Machine
hooted
stupendously, "Galloop, Galloop," drowned the end of the sentence,
and
proceeded in a rather flatter note than before with novel comments on
the
horrors of disorder. "Law and order must be maintained," said the
nearer
Babble Machine.
"But," began Graham.
"Don't ask questions here," said Asano, "or you will be involved in
an
argument."
"Then let us go on," said Graham, "for I want to know more of this."
As he and his companion pushed their way through the excited crowd
that
swarmed beneath these voices, towards the exit, Graham conceived
more
clearly the proportion and features of this room. Altogether, great
and
small, there must have been nearly a thousand of these
erections,
piping, hooting, bawling and gabbling in that great space, each
with its
crowd of excited listeners, the majority of them men dressed in
blue
canvas. There were all sizes of machines, from the little
gossiping
mechanisms that chuckled out mechanical sarcasm in odd corners,
through
a number of grades to such fifty-foot giants as that which had
first
hooted over Graham.
This place was unusually crowded, because of the intense public
interest
in the course of affairs in Paris. Evidently the struggle had been
much
more savage than Ostrog had represented it. All the mechanisms
were
discoursing upon that topic, and the repetition of the people made
the
huge hive buzz with such phrases as "Lynched policemen," "Women
burnt
alive," "Fuzzy Wuzzy." "But does the Master allow such things?" asked
a
man near him. "Is _this_ the beginning of the Master's rule?"
Is _this_ the beginning of the Master's rule? For a long time after he
had
left the place, the hooting, whistling and braying of the machines
pursued
him; "Galloop, Galloop," "Yahahah, Yaha, Yap! Yaha!" Is _this_
the beginning
of the Master's rule?
Directly they were out upon the ways he began to question Asano closely
on
the nature of the Parisian struggle. "This disarmament! What was
their
trouble? What does it all mean?" Asano seemed chiefly anxious to
reassure
him that it was "all right."
"But these outrages!"
"You cannot have an omelette," said Asano, "without breaking eggs. It
is
only the rough people. Only in one part of the city. All the rest is
all
right. The Parisian labourers are the wildest in the world, except
ours."
"What! the Londoners?"
"No, the Japanese. They have to be kept in order."
"But burning women alive!"
"A Commune!" said Asano. "They would rob you of your property. They
would
do away with property and give the world over to mob rule. You
are
Master, the world is yours. But there will be no Commune here. There
is
no need for black police here.
"And every consideration has been shown. It is their own
negroes--French
speaking negroes. Senegal regiments, and Niger and
Timbuctoo."
"Regiments?" said Graham, "I thought there was only one--"
"No," said Asano, and glanced at him. "There is more than one."
Graham felt unpleasantly helpless.
"I did not think," he began and stopped abruptly. He went off at a
tangent
to ask for information about these Babble Machines. For the most
part, the
crowd present had been shabbily or even raggedly dressed, and
Graham learnt
that so far as the more prosperous classes were concerned,
in all the more
comfortable private apartments of the city were fixed
Babble Machines that
would speak directly a lever was pulled. The tenant
of the apartment could
connect this with the cables of any of the great
News Syndicates that he
preferred. When he learnt this presently, he
demanded the reason of their
absence from his own suite of apartments.
Asano was embarrassed. "I never
thought," he said. "Ostrog must have had
them removed."
Graham stared. "How was I to know?" he exclaimed.
"Perhaps he thought they would annoy you," said Asano.
"They must be replaced directly I return," said Graham after an interval.
He found a difficulty in understanding that this news room and the
dining
hall were not great central places, that such establishments
were
repeated almost beyond counting all over the city. But ever and
again
during the night's expedition his ears would pick out from the tumult
of
the ways the peculiar hooting of the organ of Boss Ostrog,
"Galloop,
Galloop!" or the shrill "Yahaha, Yaha Yap!--Hear a live paper
yelp!" of
its chief rival.
Repeated, too, everywhere, were such _crèches_ as the one he now
entered.
It was reached by a lift, and by a glass bridge that flung across
the
dining hall and traversed the ways at a slight upward angle. To enter
the
first section of the place necessitated the use of his solvent
signature
under Asano's direction. They were immediately attended to by a man
in a
violet robe and gold clasp, the insignia of practising medical men.
He
perceived from this man's manner that his identity was known,
and
proceeded to ask questions on the strange arrangements of the
place
without reserve.
On either side of the passage, which was silent and padded, as if
to
deaden the footfall, were narrow little doors, their size and
arrangement
suggestive of the cells of a Victorian prison. But the upper
portion of
each door was of the same greenish transparent stuff that had
enclosed
him at his awakening, and within, dimly seen, lay, in every case, a
very
young baby in a little nest of wadding. Elaborate apparatus watched
the
atmosphere and rang a bell far away in the central office at
the
slightest departure from the optimum of temperature and moisture.
A
system of such _crèches_ had almost entirely replaced the
hazardous
adventures of the old-world nursing. The attendant presently
called
Graham's attention to the wet nurses, a vista of mechanical figures,
with
arms, shoulders, and breasts of astonishingly realistic
modelling,
articulation, and texture, but mere brass tripods below, and
having in
the place of features a flat disc bearing advertisements likely to
be of
interest to mothers.
Of all the strange things that Graham came upon that night, none
jarred
more upon his habits of thought than this place. The spectacle of
the
little pink creatures, their feeble limbs swaying uncertainly in
vague
first movements, left alone, without embrace or endearment, was
wholly
repugnant to him. The attendant doctor was of a different opinion.
His
statistical evidence showed beyond dispute that in the Victorian
times
the most dangerous passage of life was the arms of the mother, that
there
human mortality had ever been most terrible. On the other hand
this
_crèche_ company, the International Crèche Syndicate, lost not
one-half
per cent, of the million babies or so that formed its peculiar care.
But
Graham's prejudice was too strong even for those figures.
Along one of the many passages of the place they presently came upon
a
young couple in the usual blue canvas peering through the
transparency
and laughing hysterically at the bald head of their first-born.
Graham's
face must have showed his estimate of them, for their merriment
ceased
and they looked abashed. But this little incident accentuated his
sudden
realisation of the gulf between his habits of thought and the ways of
the
new age. He passed on to the crawling rooms and the
Kindergarten,
perplexed and distressed. He found the endless long playrooms
were empty!
the latter-day children at least still spent their nights in
sleep. As
they went through these, the little officer pointed out the nature
of the
toys, developments of those devised by that inspired
sentimentalist
Froebel. There were nurses here, but much was done by machines
that sang
and danced and dandled.
Graham was still not clear upon many points. "But so many orphans,"
he
said perplexed, reverting to a first misconception, and learnt again
that
they were not orphans.
So soon as they had left the _crèche_ he began to speak of the horror
the
babies in their incubating cases had caused him. "Is motherhood gone?"
he
said. "Was it a cant? Surely it was an instinct. This seems
so
unnatural--abominable almost."
"Along here we shall come to the dancing place," said Asano by way
of
reply. "It is sure to be crowded. In spite of all the political unrest
it
will be crowded. The women take no great interest in politics--except
a
few here and there. You will see the mothers--most young women in
London
are mothers. In that class it is considered a creditable thing to
have
one child--a proof of animation. Few middle class people have more
than
one. With the Labour Department it is different. As for motherhood!
They
still take an immense pride in the children. They come here to look
at
them quite often."
"Then do you mean that the population of the World--?"
"Is falling? Yes. Except among the people under the Labour Department.
In
spite of scientific discipline they are reckless--"
The air was suddenly dancing with music, and down a way they
approached
obliquely, set with gorgeous pillars as it seemed of clear
amethyst,
flowed a concourse of gay people and a tumult of merry cries
and
laughter. He saw curled heads, wreathed brows, and a happy
intricate
flutter of gamboge pass triumphant across the picture.
"You will see," said Asano with a faint smile. "The world has changed.
In
a moment you will see the mothers of the new age. Come this way. We
shall
see those yonder again very soon."
They ascended a certain height in a swift lift, and changed to a
slower
one. As they went on the music grew upon them, until it was near and
full
and splendid, and, moving with its glorious intricacies they
could
distinguish the beat of innumerable dancing feet. They made a payment
at
a turnstile, and emerged upon the wide gallery that overlooked
the
dancing place, and upon the full enchantment of sound and sight.
"Here," said Asano, "are the fathers and mothers of the little
ones you
saw."
The hall was not so richly decorated as that of the Atlas, but
saving
that, it was, for its size, the most splendid Graham had seen.
The
beautiful white-limbed figures that supported the galleries reminded
him
once more of the restored magnificence of sculpture; they seemed
to
writhe in engaging attitudes, their faces laughed. The source of
the
music that filled the place was hidden, and the whole vast shining
floor
was thick with dancing couples. "Look at them," said the little
officer,
"see how much they show of motherhood."
The gallery they stood upon ran along the upper edge of a huge screen
that
cut the dancing hall on one side from a sort of outer hall that
showed
through broad arches the incessant onward rush of the city ways.
In this
outer hall was a great crowd of less brilliantly dressed people,
as numerous
almost as those who danced within, the great majority wearing
the blue
uniform of the Labour Department that was now so familiar to
Graham. Too poor
to pass the turnstiles to the festival, they were yet
unable to keep away
from the sound of its seductions. Some of them even
had cleared spaces, and
were dancing also, fluttering their rags in the
air. Some shouted as they
danced, jests and odd allusions Graham did not
understand. Once someone began
whistling the refrain of the revolutionary
song, but it seemed as though that
beginning was promptly suppressed. The
corner was dark and Graham could not
see. He turned to the hall again.
Above the caryatids were marble busts of
men whom that age esteemed great
moral emancipators and pioneers; for the
most part their names were
strange to Graham, though he recognised Grant
Allen, Le Gallienne,
Nietzsche, Shelley and Goodwin. Great black festoons and
eloquent
sentiments reinforced the huge inscription that partially defaced
the
upper end of the dancing place, and asserted that "The Festival of
the
Awakening" was in progress.
"Myriads are taking holiday or staying from work because of that,
quite
apart from the labourers who refuse to go back," said Asano.
"These
people are always ready for holidays."
Graham walked to the parapet and stood leaning over, looking down at
the
dancers. Save for two or three remote whispering couples, who had
stolen
apart, he and his guide had the gallery to themselves. A warm breath
of
scent and vitality came up to him. Both men and women below were
lightly
clad, bare-armed, open-necked, as the universal warmth of the
city
permitted. The hair of the men was often a mass of effeminate
curls,
their chins were always shaven, and many of them had flushed or
coloured
cheeks. Many of the women were very pretty, and all were dressed
with
elaborate coquetry. As they swept by beneath, he saw ecstatic faces
with
eyes half closed in pleasure.
"What sort of people are these?" he asked abruptly.
"Workers--prosperous workers. What you would have called the middle
class.
Independent tradesmen with little separate businesses have
vanished long ago,
but there are store servers, managers, engineers of a
hundred sorts. To-night
is a holiday of course, and every dancing place
in the city will be crowded,
and every place of worship."
"But--the women?"
"The same. There's a thousand forms of work for women now. But you had
the
beginning of the independent working-woman in your days. Most women
are
independent now. Most of these are married more or less--there are a
number
of methods of contract--and that gives them more money, and
enables them to
enjoy themselves."
"I see," said Graham, looking at the flushed faces, the flash and swirl
of
movement, and still thinking of that nightmare of pink helpless limbs.
"And
these are--mothers."
"Most of them."
"The more I see of these things the more complex I find your
problems.
This, for instance, is a surprise. That news from Paris was a
surprise."
In a little while he spoke again:
"These are mothers. Presently, I suppose, I shall get into the modern
way
of seeing things. I have old habits of mind clinging about
me--habits
based, I suppose, on needs that are over and done with. Of course,
in our
time, a woman was supposed not only to bear children, but to
cherish
them, to devote herself to them, to educate them--all the essentials
of
moral and mental education a child owed its mother. Or went
without.
Quite a number, I admit, went without. Nowadays, clearly, there is
no
more need for such care than if they were butterflies. I see that!
Only
there was an ideal--that figure of a grave, patient woman, silently
and
serenely mistress of a home, mother and maker of men--to love her was
a
sort of worship--"
He stopped and repeated, "A sort of worship."
"Ideals change," said the little man, "as needs change."
Graham awoke from an instant reverie and Asano repeated his
words.
Graham's mind returned to the thing at hand.
"Of course I see the perfect reasonableness of this. Restraint,
soberness,
the matured thought, the unselfish act, they are necessities
of the barbarous
state, the life of dangers. Dourness is man's tribute to
unconquered nature.
But man has conquered nature now for all practical
purposes--his political
affairs are managed by Bosses with a black
police--and life is joyous."
He looked at the dancers again. "Joyous," he said.
"There are weary moments," said the little officer, reflectively.
"They all look young. Down there I should be visibly the oldest man.
And
in my own time I should have passed as middle-aged."
"They are young. There are few old people in this class in the
work
cities."
"How is that?"
"Old people's lives are not so pleasant as they used to be, unless
they
are rich to hire lovers and helpers. And we have an institution
called
Euthanasy."
"Ah! that Euthanasy!" said Graham. "The easy death?"
"The easy death. It is the last pleasure. The Euthanasy Company does
it
well. People will pay the sum--it is a costly thing--long beforehand,
go
off to some pleasure city and return impoverished and weary, very
weary."
"There is a lot left for me to understand," said Graham after a
pause.
"Yet I see the logic of it all. Our array of angry virtues and
sour
restraints was the consequence of danger and insecurity. The Stoic,
the
Puritan, even in my time, were vanishing types. In the old days man
was
armed against Pain, now he is eager for Pleasure. There lies
the
difference. Civilisation has driven pain and danger so far
off--for
well-to-do people. And only well-to-do people matter now. I have
been
asleep two hundred years."
For a minute they leant on the balustrading, following the
intricate
evolution of the dance. Indeed the scene was very beautiful.
"Before God," said Graham, suddenly, "I would rather be a wounded
sentinel
freezing in the snow than one of these painted fools!"
"In the snow," said Asano, "one might think differently."
"I am uncivilised," said Graham, not heeding him. "That is the trouble.
I
am primitive--Paleolithic. _Their_ fountain of rage and fear and anger
is
sealed and closed, the habits of a lifetime make them cheerful and
easy
and delightful. You must bear with my nineteenth century shocks
and
disgusts. These people, you say, are skilled workers and so forth.
And
while these dance, men are fighting--men are dying in Paris to keep
the
world--that they may dance."
Asano smiled faintly. "For that matter, men are dying in London,"
he
said.
There was a moment's silence.
"Where do these sleep?" asked Graham.
"Above and below--an intricate warren."
"And where do they work? This is--the domestic life."
"You will see little work to-night. Half the workers are out or
under
arms. Half these people are keeping holiday. But we will go to the
work
places if you wish it."
For a time Graham watched the dancers, then suddenly turned away. "I
want
to see the workers. I have seen enough of these," he said.
Asano led the way along the gallery across the dancing hall.
Presently
they came to a transverse passage that brought a breath of
fresher,
colder air.
Asano glanced at this passage as they went past, stopped, went back to
it,
and turned to Graham with a smile. "Here, Sire," he said, "is
something--will
be familiar to you at least--and yet--. But I will not
tell you. Come!"
He led the way along a closed passage that presently became cold.
The
reverberation of their feet told that this passage was a bridge.
They
came into a circular gallery that was glazed in from the outer
weather,
and so reached a circular chamber which seemed familiar, though
Graham
could not recall distinctly when he had entered it before. In this was
a
ladder--the first ladder he had seen since his awakening--up which
they
went, and came into a high, dark, cold place in which was another
almost
vertical ladder. This they ascended, Graham still perplexed.
But at the top he understood, and recognised the metallic bars to which
he
clung. He was in the cage under the ball of St. Paul's. The dome rose
but a
little way above the general contour of the city, into the still
twilight,
and sloped away, shining greasily under a few distant lights,
into a
circumambient ditch of darkness.
Out between the bars he looked upon the wind-clear northern sky and
saw
the starry constellations all unchanged. Capella hung in the west,
Vega
was rising, and the seven glittering points of the Great Bear
swept
overhead in their stately circle about the Pole.
He saw these stars in a clear gap of sky. To the east and south the
great
circular shapes of complaining wind-wheels blotted out the heavens,
so
that the glare about the Council House was hidden. To the southwest
hung
Orion, showing like a pallid ghost through a tracery of iron-work
and
interlacing shapes above a dazzling coruscation of lights. A
bellowing
and siren screaming that came from the flying stages warned the
world
that one of the aeroplanes was ready to start. He remained for a
space
gazing towards the glaring stage. Then his eyes went back to
the
northward constellations.
For a long time he was silent. "This," he said at last, smiling in
the
shadow, "seems the strangest thing of all. To stand in the dome of
St.
Paul's and look once more upon these familiar, silent stars!"
Thence Graham was taken by Asano along devious ways to the great
gambling
and business quarters where the bulk of the fortunes in the city
were
lost and made. It impressed him as a well-nigh interminable series
of
very high halls, surrounded by tiers upon tiers of galleries into
which
opened thousands of offices, and traversed by a complicated multitude
of
bridges, footways, aerial motor rails, and trapeze and cable leaps.
And
here more than anywhere the note of vehement vitality, of
uncontrollable,
hasty activity, rose high. Everywhere was violent
advertisement, until
his brain swam at the tumult of light and colour. And
Babble Machines of
a peculiarly rancid tone were abundant and filled the air
with strenuous
squealing and an idiotic slang. "Skin your eyes and slide,"
"Gewhoop,
Bonanza," "Gollipers come and hark!"
The place seemed to him to be dense with people either profoundly
agitated
or swelling with obscure cunning, yet he learnt that the place
was
comparatively empty, that the great political convulsion of the last
few days
had reduced transactions to an unprecedented minimum. In one
huge place were
long avenues of roulette tables, each with an excited,
undignified crowd
about it; in another a yelping Babel of white-faced
women and red-necked
leathery-lunged men bought and sold the shares of an
absolutely fictitious
business undertaking which, every five minutes,
paid a dividend of ten per
cent, and cancelled a certain proportion of
its shares by means of a lottery
wheel.
These business activities were prosecuted with an energy that
readily
passed into violence, and Graham approaching a dense crowd found at
its
centre a couple of prominent merchants in violent controversy with
teeth
and nails on some delicate point of business etiquette. Something
still
remained in life to be fought for. Further he had a shock at a
vehement
announcement in phonetic letters of scarlet flame, each twice the
height
of a man, that "WE ASSURE THE PROPRAIET'R. WE ASSURE THE
PROPRAIET'R."
"Who's the proprietor?" he asked.
"You."
"But what do they assure me?" he asked. "What do they assure me?"
"Didn't you have assurance?"
Graham thought. "Insurance?"
"Yes--Insurance. I remember that was the older word. They are
insuring
your life. Dozands of people are taking out policies, myriads of
lions
are being put on you. And further on other people are buying
annuities.
They do that on everybody who is at all prominent. Look
there!"
A crowd of people surged and roared, and Graham saw a vast black
screen
suddenly illuminated in still larger letters of burning purple.
"Anuetes
on the Propraiet'r--x 5 pr. G." The people began to boo and shout
at
this, a number of hard breathing, wild-eyed men came running
past,
clawing with hooked fingers at the air. There was a furious crush about
a
little doorway.
Asano did a brief, inaccurate calculation. "Seventeen per cent, per
annum
is their annuity on you. They would not pay so much per cent, if
they could
see you now, Sire. But they do not know. Your own annuities
used to be a very
safe investment, but now you are sheer gambling, of
course. This is probably
a desperate bid. I doubt if people will get
their money."
The crowd of would-be annuitants grew so thick about them that for
some
time they could move neither forward nor backward. Graham noticed
what
appeared to him to be a high proportion of women among the
speculators,
and was reminded again of the economic independence of their
sex. They
seemed remarkably well able to take care of themselves in the
crowd,
using their elbows with particular skill, as he learnt to his cost.
One
curly-headed person caught in the pressure for a space,
looked
steadfastly at him several times, almost as if she recognised him,
and
then, edging deliberately towards him, touched his hand with her arm in
a
scarcely accidental manner, and made it plain by a look as ancient
as
Chaldea that he had found favour in her eyes. And then a
lank,
grey-bearded man, perspiring copiously in a noble passion of
self-help,
blind to all earthly things save that glaring bait, thrust between
them
in a cataclysmal rush towards that alluring "X 5 pr. G."
"I want to get out of this," said Graham to Asano. "This is not what
I
came to see. Show me the workers. I want to see the people in blue.
These
parasitic lunatics--"
He found himself wedged into a straggling mass of people.
CHAPTER XXI
THE UNDER-SIDE
From the Business Quarter they presently passed by the running ways
into
a remote quarter of the city, where the bulk of the manufactures
was
done. On their way the platforms crossed the Thames twice, and passed
in
a broad viaduct across one of the great roads that entered the city
from
the North. In both cases his impression was swift and in both very
vivid.
The river was a broad wrinkled glitter of black sea water, overarched
by
buildings, and vanishing either way into a blackness starred
with
receding lights. A string of black barges passed seaward, manned
by
blue-clad men. The road was a long and very broad and high tunnel,
along
which big-wheeled machines drove noiselessly and swiftly. Here, too,
the
distinctive blue of the Labour Department was in abundance.
The
smoothness of the double tracks, the largeness and the lightness of
the
big pneumatic wheels in proportion to the vehicular body, struck
Graham
most vividly. One lank and very high carriage with longitudinal
metallic
rods hung with the dripping carcasses of many hundred sheep arrested
his
attention unduly. Abruptly the edge of the archway cut and blotted
out
the picture.
Presently they left the way and descended by a lift and traversed
a
passage that sloped downward, and so came to a descending lift again.
The
appearance of things changed. Even the pretence of
architectural
ornament disappeared, the lights diminished in number and size,
the
architecture became more and more massive in proportion to the spaces
as
the factory quarters were reached. And in the dusty biscuit-making
place
of the potters, among the felspar mills, in the furnace rooms of
the
metal workers, among the incandescent lakes of crude Eadhamite, the
blue
canvas clothing was on man, woman and child.
Many of these great and dusty galleries were silent avenues of
machinery,
endless raked out ashen furnaces testified to the
revolutionary
dislocation, but wherever there was work it was being done by
slow-moving
workers in blue canvas. The only people not in blue canvas were
the
overlookers of the work-places and the orange-clad Labour Police.
And
fresh from the flushed faces of the dancing halls, the voluntary
vigours
of the business quarter, Graham could note the pinched faces, the
feeble
muscles, and weary eyes of many of the latter-day workers. Such as he
saw
at work were noticeably inferior in physique to the few gaily
dressed
managers and forewomen who were directing their labours. The
burly
labourers of the old Victorian times had followed that dray horse and
all
such living force producers, to extinction; the place of his
costly
muscles was taken by some dexterous machine. The latter-day
labourer,
male as well as female, was essentially a machine-minder and
feeder, a
servant and attendant, or an artist under direction.
The women, in comparison with those Graham remembered, were as a
class
distinctly plain and flat-chested. Two hundred years of
emancipation
from the moral restraints of Puritanical religion, two hundred
years of
city life, had done their work in eliminating the strain of
feminine
beauty and vigour from the blue canvas myriads. To be
brilliant
physically or mentally, to be in any way attractive or exceptional,
had
been and was still a certain way of emancipation to the drudge, a
line
of escape to the Pleasure City and its splendours and delights, and
at
last to the Euthanasy and peace. To be steadfast against
such
inducements was scarcely to be expected of meanly nourished souls.
In
the young cities of Graham's former life, the newly aggregated
labouring
mass had been a diverse multitude, still stirred by the tradition
of
personal honour and a high morality; now it was differentiating into
an
instinct class, with a moral and physical difference of its
own--even
with a dialect of its own.
They penetrated downward, ever downward, towards the working
places.
Presently they passed underneath one of the streets of the moving
ways,
and saw its platforms running on their rails far overhead, and chinks
of
white lights between the transverse slits. The factories that were
not
working were sparsely lighted; to Graham they and their shrouded
aisles
of giant machines seemed plunged in gloom, and even where work was
going
on the illumination was far less brilliant than upon the public
ways.
Beyond the blazing lakes of Eadhamite he came to the warren of
the
jewellers, and, with some difficulty and by using his signature,
obtained
admission to these galleries. They were high and dark, and rather
cold.
In the first a few men were making ornaments of gold filigree, each
man
at a little bench by himself, and with a little shaded light. The
long
vista of light patches, with the nimble fingers brightly lit and
moving
among the gleaming yellow coils, and the intent face like the face of
a
ghost, in each shadow, had the oddest effect.
The work was beautifully executed, but without any strength of
modelling
or drawing, for the most part intricate grotesques or the ringing
of the
changes on a geometrical _motif_. These workers wore a peculiar
white
uniform without pockets or sleeves. They assumed this on coming to
work,
but at night they were stripped and examined before they left
the
premises of the Department. In spite of every precaution, the
Labour
policeman told them in a depressed tone, the Department was
not
infrequently robbed.
Beyond was a gallery of women busied in cutting and setting slabs
of
artificial ruby, and next these were men and women working together
upon
the slabs of copper net that formed the basis of _cloisonné_ tiles.
Many
of these workers had lips and nostrils a livid white, due to a
disease
caused by a peculiar purple enamel that chanced to be much in
fashion.
Asano apologised to Graham for this offensive sight, but excused
himself
on the score of the convenience of this route. "This is what I wanted
to
see," said Graham; "this is what I wanted to see," trying to avoid
a
start at a particularly striking disfigurement.
"She might have done better with herself than that," said Asano.
Graham made some indignant comments.
"But, Sire, we simply could not stand that stuff without the purple,"
said
Asano. "In your days people could stand such crudities, they were
nearer the
barbaric by two hundred years."
They continued along one of the lower galleries of this
_cloisonné_
factory, and came to a little bridge that spanned a vault.
Looking over
the parapet, Graham saw that beneath was a wharf under yet
more
tremendous archings than any he had seen. Three barges, smothered
in
floury dust, were being unloaded of their cargoes of powdered felspar
by
a multitude of coughing men, each guiding a little truck; the dust
filled
the place with a choking mist, and turned the electric glare yellow.
The
vague shadows of these workers gesticulated about their feet, and
rushed
to and fro against a long stretch of white-washed wall. Every now
and
then one would stop to cough.
A shadowy, huge mass of masonry rising out of the inky water, brought
to
Graham's mind the thought of the multitude of ways and galleries
and
lifts that rose floor above floor overhead between him and the sky.
The
men worked in silence under the supervision of two of the Labour
Police;
their feet made a hollow thunder on the planks along which they went
to
and fro. And as he looked at this scene, some hidden voice in
the
darkness began to sing.
"Stop that!" shouted one of the policemen, but the order was
disobeyed,
and first one and then all the white-stained men who were working
there
had taken up the beating refrain, singing it defiantly--the Song of
the
Revolt. The feet upon the planks thundered now to the rhythm of the
song,
tramp, tramp, tramp. The policeman who had shouted glanced at his
fellow,
and Graham saw him shrug his shoulders. He made no further effort to
stop
the singing.
And so they went through these factories and places of toil, seeing
many
painful and grim things. That walk left on Graham's mind a maze
of
memories, fluctuating pictures of swathed halls, and crowded vaults
seen
through clouds of dust, of intricate machines, the racing threads
of
looms, the heavy beat of stamping machinery, the roar and rattle of
belt
and armature, of ill-lit subterranean aisles of sleeping
places,
illimitable vistas of pin-point lights. Here was the smell of
tanning,
and here the reek of a brewery, and here unprecedented reeks.
Everywhere
were pillars and cross archings of such a massiveness as Graham
had never
before seen, thick Titans of greasy, shining brickwork crushed
beneath
the vast weight of that complex city world, even as these anemic
millions
were crushed by its complexity. And everywhere were pale features,
lean
limbs, disfigurement and degradation.
Once and again, and again a third time, Graham heard the song of
the
revolt during his long, unpleasant research in these places, and once
he
saw a confused struggle down a passage, and learnt that a number of
these
serfs had seized their bread before their work was done. Graham
was
ascending towards the ways again when he saw a number of
blue-clad
children running down a transverse passage, and presently perceived
the
reason of their panic in a company of the Labour Police armed with
clubs,
trotting towards some unknown disturbance. And then came a
remote
disorder. But for the most part this remnant that worked,
worked
hopelessly. All the spirit that was left in fallen humanity was above
in
the streets that night, calling for the Master, and valiantly and
noisily
keeping its arms.
They emerged from these wanderings and stood blinking in the bright
light
of the middle passage of the platforms again. They became aware of
the
remote hooting and yelping of the machines of one of the
General
Intelligence Offices, and suddenly came men running, and along
the
platforms and about the ways everywhere was a shouting and crying. Then
a
woman with a face of mute white terror, and another who gasped
and
shrieked as she ran.
"What has happened now?" said Graham, puzzled, for he could not
understand
their thick speech. Then he heard it in English and perceived
that the thing
that everyone was shouting, that men yelled to one
another, that women took
up screaming, that was passing like the first
breeze of a thunderstorm, chill
and sudden through the city, was this:
"Ostrog has ordered the Black Police
to London. The Black Police are
coming from South Africa.... The Black
Police. The Black Police."
Asano's face was white and astonished; he hesitated, looked at
Graham's
face, and told him the thing he already knew. "But how can they
know?"
asked Asano.
Graham heard someone shouting. "Stop all work. Stop all work," and
a
swarthy hunchback, ridiculously gay in green and gold, came leaping
down
the platforms toward him, bawling again and again in good English,
"This
is Ostrog's doing, Ostrog the Knave! The Master is betrayed." His
voice
was hoarse and a thin foam dropped from his ugly shouting mouth.
He
yelled an unspeakable horror that the Black Police had done in Paris,
and
so passed shrieking, "Ostrog the Knave!"
For a moment Graham stood still, for it had come upon him again that
these
things were a dream. He looked up at the great cliff of buildings
on either
side, vanishing into blue haze at last above the lights, and
down to the
roaring tiers of platforms, and the shouting, running people
who were
gesticulating past. "The Master is betrayed!" they cried. "The
Master is
betrayed!"
Suddenly the situation shaped itself in his mind real and urgent.
His
heart began to beat fast and strong.
"It has come," he said. "I might have known. The hour has come."
He thought swiftly. "What am I to do?"
"Go back to the Council House," said Asano.
"Why should I not appeal--? The people are here."
"You will lose time. They will doubt if it is you. But they will
mass
about the Council House. There you will find their leaders. Your
strength
is there--with them."
"Suppose this is only a rumour?"
"It sounds true," said Asano.
"Let us have the facts," said Graham.
Asano shrugged his shoulders. "We had better get towards the
Council
House," he cried. "That is where they will swarm. Even now the ruins
may
be impassable."
Graham regarded him doubtfully and followed him.
They went up the stepped platforms to the swiftest one, and there
Asano
accosted a labourer. The answers to his questions were in the
thick,
vulgar speech.
"What did he say?" asked Graham.
"He knows little, but he told me that the Black Police would have
arrived
here before the people knew--had not someone in the Wind-Vane
Offices
learnt. He said a girl."
"A girl? Not--?"
"He said a girl--he did not know who she was. Who came out from
the
Council House crying aloud, and told the men at work among the
ruins."
And then another thing was shouted, something that turned an
aimless
tumult into determinate movements, it came like a wind along
the
street. "To your wards, to your wards. Every man get arms. Every man
to
his ward!"
CHAPTER XXII
THE STRUGGLE IN THE COUNCIL HOUSE
As Asano and Graham hurried along to the ruins about the Council
House,
they saw everywhere the excitement of the people rising. "To your
wards!
To your wards!" Everywhere men and women in blue were hurrying
from
unknown subterranean employments, up the staircases of the middle
path;
at one place Graham saw an arsenal of the revolutionary
committee
besieged by a crowd of shouting men, at another a couple of men in
the
hated yellow uniform of the Labour Police, pursued by a gathering
crowd,
fled precipitately along the swift way that went in the
opposite
direction.
The cries of "To your wards!" became at last a continuous shouting as
they
drew near the Government quarter. Many of the shouts were
unintelligible.
"Ostrog has betrayed us," one man bawled in a hoarse
voice, again and again,
dinning that refrain into Graham's ear until it
haunted him. This person
stayed close beside Graham and Asano on the
swift way, shouting to the people
who swarmed on the lower platforms as
he rushed past them. His cry about
Ostrog alternated with some
incomprehensible orders. Presently he went
leaping down and disappeared.
Graham's mind was filled with the din. His plans were vague and
unformed.
He had one picture of some commanding position from which he
could
address the multitudes, another of meeting Ostrog face to face. He
was
full of rage, of tense muscular excitement, his hands gripped, his
lips
were pressed together.
The way to the Council House across the ruins was impassable, but
Asano
met that difficulty and took Graham into the premises of the
central
post-office. The post-office was nominally at work, but the
blue-clothed
porters moved sluggishly or had stopped to stare through the
arches of
their galleries at the shouting men who were going by outside.
"Every man
to his ward! Every man to his ward!" Here, by Asano's advice,
Graham
revealed his identity.
They crossed to the Council House by a cable cradle. Already in the
brief
interval since the capitulation of the Councillors a great change
had
been wrought in the appearance of the ruins. The spurting cascades of
the
ruptured sea-water mains had been captured and tamed, and huge
temporary
pipes ran overhead along a flimsy looking fabric of girders. The
sky was
laced with restored cables and wires that served the Council House,
and a
mass of new fabric with cranes and other building machines going to
and
fro upon it projected to the left of the white pile.
The moving ways that ran across this area had been restored, albeit
for
once running under the open sky. These were the ways that Graham had
seen
from the little balcony in the hour of his awakening, not nine
days
since, and the hall of his Trance had been on the further side, where
now
shapeless piles of smashed and shattered masonry were heaped
together.
It was already high day and the sun was shining brightly. Out of
their
tall caverns of blue electric light came the swift ways crowded
with
multitudes of people, who poured off them and gathered ever denser
over
the wreckage and confusion of the ruins. The air was full of
their
shouting, and they were pressing and swaying towards the
central
building. For the most part that shouting mass consisted of
shapeless
swarms, but here and there Graham could see that a rude
discipline
struggled to establish itself. And every voice clamoured for order
in the
chaos. "To your wards! Every man to his ward!"
The cable carried them into a hall which Graham recognised as
the
ante-chamber to the Hall of the Atlas, about the gallery of which he
had
walked days ago with Howard to show himself to the Vanished Council,
an
hour from his awakening. Now the place was empty except for two
cable
attendants. These men seemed hugely astonished to recognise the
Sleeper
in the man who swung down from the cross seat.
"Where is Ostrog?" he demanded. "I must see Ostrog forthwith. He
has
disobeyed me. I have come back to take things out of his hands."
Without
waiting for Asano, he went straight across the place, ascended the
steps
at the further end, and, pulling the curtain aside, found himself
facing
the perpetually labouring Titan.
The hall was empty. Its appearance had changed very greatly since
his
first sight of it. It had suffered serious injury in the
violent
struggle of the first outbreak. On the right hand side of the
great
figure the upper half of the wall had been torn away for nearly
two
hundred feet of its length, and a sheet of the same glassy film that
had
enclosed Graham at his awakening had been drawn across the gap.
This
deadened, but did not altogether exclude the roar of the people
outside.
"Wards! Wards! Wards!" they seemed to be saying. Through it there
were
visible the beams and supports of metal scaffoldings that rose and
fell
according to the requirements of a great crowd of workmen. An
idle
building machine, with lank arms of red painted metal stretched
gauntly
across this green tinted picture. On it were still a number of
workmen
staring at the crowd below. For a moment he stood regarding
these
things, and Asano overtook him.
"Ostrog," said Asano, "will be in the small offices beyond there."
The
little man looked livid now and his eyes searched Graham's face.
They had scarcely advanced ten paces from the curtain before a
little
panel to the left of the Atlas rolled up, and Ostrog, accompanied
by
Lincoln and followed by two black and yellow clad negroes,
appeared
crossing the remote corner of the hall, towards a second panel that
was
raised and open. "Ostrog," shouted Graham, and at the sound of his
voice
the little party turned astonished.
Ostrog said something to Lincoln and advanced alone.
Graham was the first to speak. His voice was loud and dictatorial.
"What
is this I hear?" he asked. "Are you bringing negroes here--to keep
the
people down?"
"It is none too soon," said Ostrog. "They have been getting out of
hand
more and more, since the revolt. I under-estimated--"
"Do you mean that these infernal negroes are on the way?"
"On the way. As it is, you have seen the people--outside?"
"No wonder! But--after what was said. You have taken too much on
yourself,
Ostrog."
Ostrog said nothing, but drew nearer.
"These negroes must not come to London," said Graham. "I am Master
and
they shall not come."
Ostrog glanced at Lincoln, who at once came towards them with his
two
attendants close behind him. "Why not?" asked Ostrog.
"White men must be mastered by white men. Besides--"
"The negroes are only an instrument."
"But that is not the question. I am the Master. I mean to be the
Master.
And I tell you these negroes shall not come."
"The people--"
"I believe in the people."
"Because you are an anachronism. You are a man out of the
Past--an
accident. You are Owner perhaps of the world. Nominally--legally.
But you
are not Master. You do not know enough to be Master."
He glanced at Lincoln again. "I know now what you think--I can
guess
something of what you mean to do. Even now it is not too late to
warn
you. You dream of human equality--of some sort of socialistic
order--you
have all those worn-out dreams of the nineteenth century fresh and
vivid
in your mind, and you would rule this age that you do not
understand."
"Listen!" said Graham. "You can hear it--a sound like the sea.
Not
voices--but a voice. Do _you_ altogether understand?"
"We taught them that," said Ostrog.
"Perhaps. Can you teach them to forget it? But enough of this!
These
negroes must not come."
There was a pause and Ostrog looked him in the eyes.
"They will," he said.
"I forbid it," said Graham.
"They have started."
"I will not have it."
"No," said Ostrog. "Sorry as I am to follow the method of the
Council--.
For your own good--you must not side with--Disorder. And now
that you are
here--. It was kind of you to come here."
Lincoln laid his hand on Graham's shoulder. Abruptly Graham realised
the
enormity of his blunder in coming to the Council House. He
turned
towards the curtains that separated the hall from the ante-chamber.
The
clutching hand of Asano intervened. In another moment Lincoln
had
grasped Graham's cloak.
He turned and struck at Lincoln's face, and incontinently a negro had
him
by collar and arm. He wrenched himself away, his sleeve tore noisily,
and
he stumbled back, to be tripped by the other attendant. Then he
struck
the ground heavily and he was staring at the distant ceiling of the
hall.
He shouted, rolled over, struggling fiercely, clutched an attendant's
leg
and threw him headlong, and struggled to his feet.
Lincoln appeared before him, went down heavily again with a blow under
the
point of the jaw and lay still. Graham made two strides, stumbled.
And then
Ostrog's arm was round his neck, he was pulled over backward,
fell heavily,
and his arms were pinned to the ground. After a few violent
efforts he ceased
to struggle and lay staring at Ostrog's heaving throat.
"You--are--a prisoner," panted Ostrog, exulting. "You--were rather
a
fool--to come back."
Graham turned his head about and perceived through the irregular
green
window in the walls of the hall the men who had been working the
building
cranes gesticulating excitedly to the people below them. They had
seen!
Ostrog followed his eyes and started. He shouted something to Lincoln,
but
Lincoln did not move. A bullet smashed among the mouldings above the
Atlas.
The two sheets of transparent matter that had been stretched
across this gap
were rent, the edges of the torn aperture darkened,
curved, ran rapidly
towards the framework, and in a moment the Council
chamber stood open to the
air. A chilly gust blew in by the gap, bringing
with it a war of voices from
the ruinous spaces without, an elvish
babblement, "Save the Master!" "What
are they doing to the Master?" "The
Master is betrayed!"
And then he realised that Ostrog's attention was distracted, that
Ostrog's
grip had relaxed, and, wrenching his arms free, he struggled to
his knees. In
another moment he had thrust Ostrog back, and he was on one
foot, his hand
gripping Ostrog's throat, and Ostrog's hands clutching the
silk about his
neck.
But now men were coming towards them from the dais--men whose
intentions
he misunderstood. He had a glimpse of someone running in the
distance
towards the curtains of the antechamber, and then Ostrog had slipped
from
him and these newcomers were upon him. To his infinite astonishment,
they
seized him. They obeyed the shouts of Ostrog.
He was lugged a dozen yards before he realised that they were
not
friends--that they were dragging him towards the open panel. When he
saw
this he pulled back, he tried to fling himself down, he shouted for
help
with all his strength. And this time there were answering cries.
The grip upon his neck relaxed, and behold! in the lower corner of
the
rent upon the wall, first one and then a number of little black
figures
appeared shouting and waving arms. They came leaping down from the
gap
into the light gallery that had led to the Silent Rooms. They ran
along
it, so near were they that Graham could see the weapons in their
hands.
Then Ostrog was shouting in his ear to the men who held him, and
once
more he was struggling with all his strength against their endeavours
to
thrust him towards the opening that yawned to receive him. "They
can't
come down," panted Ostrog. "They daren't fire. It's all right. We'll
save
him from them yet."
For long minutes as it seemed to Graham that inglorious
struggle
continued. His clothes were rent in a dozen places, he was covered
in
dust, one hand had been trodden upon. He could hear the shouts of
his
supporters, and once he heard shots. He could feel his strength
giving
way, feel his efforts wild and aimless. But no help came, and
surely,
irresistibly, that black, yawning opening came nearer.
The pressure upon him relaxed and he struggled up. He saw Ostrog's
grey
head receding and perceived that he was no longer held. He turned
about
and came full into a man in black. One of the green weapons cracked
close
to him, a drift of pungent smoke came into his face, and a steel
blade
flashed. The huge chamber span about him.
He saw a man in pale blue stabbing one of the black and yellow
attendants
not three yards from his face. Then hands were upon him again.
He was being pulled in two directions now. It seemed as though people
were
shouting to him. He wanted to understand and could not. Someone was
clutching
about his thighs, he was being hoisted in spite of his vigorous
efforts. He
understood suddenly, he ceased to struggle. He was lifted up
on men's
shoulders and carried away from that devouring panel. Ten
thousand throats
were cheering.
He saw men in blue and black hurrying after the retreating Ostrogites
and
firing. Lifted up, he saw now across the whole expanse of the hall
beneath
the Atlas image, saw that he was being carried towards the
raised platform in
the centre of the place. The far end of the hall was
already full of people
running towards him. They were looking at him
and cheering.
He became aware that a bodyguard surrounded him. Active men about
him
shouted vague orders. He saw close at hand the black moustached man
in
yellow who had been among those who had greeted him in the
public
theatre, shouting directions. The hall was already densely packed
with
swaying people, the little metal gallery sagged with a shouting load,
the
curtains at the end had been torn away, and the antechamber was
revealed
densely crowded. He could scarcely make the man near him hear for
the
tumult about them. "Where has Ostrog gone?" he asked.
The man he questioned pointed over the heads towards the lower
panels
about the hall on the side opposite the gap. They stood open, and
armed
men, blue clad with black sashes, were running through them and
vanishing
into the chambers and passages beyond. It seemed to Graham that a
sound
of firing drifted through the riot. He was carried in a staggering
curve
across the great hall towards an opening beneath the gap.
He perceived men working with a sort of rude discipline to keep the
crowd
off him, to make a space clear about him. He passed out of the hall,
and
saw a crude, new wall rising blankly before him topped by blue sky.
He
was swung down to his feet; someone gripped his arm and guided him.
He
found the man in yellow close at hand. They were taking him up a
narrow
stairway of brick, and close at hand rose the great red painted
masses,
the cranes and levers and the still engines of the big building
machine.
He was at the top of the steps. He was hurried across a narrow
railed
footway, and suddenly with a vast shouting the amphitheatre of
ruins
opened again before him. "The Master is with us! The Master! The
Master!"
The shout swept athwart the lake of faces like a wave, broke against
the
distant cliff of ruins, and came back in a welter of cries. "The
Master
is on our side!"
Graham perceived that he was no longer encompassed by people, that he
was
standing upon a little temporary platform of white metal, part of
a
flimsy seeming scaffolding that laced about the great mass of the
Council
House. Over all the huge expanse of the ruins swayed and eddied
the
shouting people; and here and there the black banners of
the
revolutionary societies ducked and swayed and formed rare nuclei
of
organisation in the chaos. Up the steep stairs of wall and scaffolding
by
which his rescuers had reached the opening in the Atlas Chamber clung
a
solid crowd, and little energetic black figures clinging to pillars
and
projections were strenuous to induce these congested, masses to
stir.
Behind him, at a higher point on the scaffolding, a number of
men
struggled upwards with the flapping folds of a huge black
standard.
Through the yawning gap in the walls below him he could look down
upon
the packed attentive multitudes in the Hall of the Atlas. The
distant
flying stages to the south came out bright and vivid, brought nearer
as
it seemed by an unusual translucency of the air. A solitary
monoplane
beat up from the central stage as if to meet the coming
aeroplanes.
"What has become of Ostrog?" asked Graham, and even as he spoke he
saw
that all eyes were turned from him towards the crest of the Council
House
building. He looked also in this direction of universal attention. For
a
moment he saw nothing but the jagged corner of a wall, hard and
clear
against the sky. Then in the shadow he perceived the interior of a
room
and recognised with a start the green and white decorations of his
former
prison. And coming quickly across this opened room and up to the
very
verge of the cliff of the ruins came a little white clad figure
followed
by two other smaller seeming figures in black and yellow. He heard
the
man beside him exclaim "Ostrog," and turned to ask a question. But
he
never did, because of the startled exclamation of another of those
who
were with him and a lank finger suddenly pointing. He looked, and
behold!
the monoplane that had been rising from the flying stage when last he
had
looked in that direction, was driving towards them. The swift
steady
flight was still novel enough to hold his attention.
Nearer it came, growing rapidly larger and larger, until it had swept
over
the further edge of the ruins and into view of the dense multitudes
below. It
drooped across the space and rose and passed overhead, rising
to clear the
mass of the Council House, a filmy translucent shape with
the solitary
aeronaut peering down through its ribs. It vanished beyond
the skyline of the
ruins.
Graham transferred his attention to Ostrog. He was signalling with
his
hands, and his attendants were busy breaking down the wall beside him.
In
another moment the monoplane came into view again, a little thing
far
away, coming round in a wide curve and going slower.
Then suddenly the man in yellow shouted: "What are they doing? What
are
the people doing? Why is Ostrog left there? Why is he not captured?
They
will lift him--the monoplane will lift him! Ah!"
The exclamation was echoed by a shout from the ruins. The rattling
sound
of the green weapons drifted across the intervening gulf to Graham,
and,
looking down, he saw a number of black and yellow uniforms running
along
one of the galleries that lay open to the air below the promontory
upon
which Ostrog stood. They fired as they ran at men unseen, and
then
emerged a number of pale blue figures in pursuit. These minute
fighting
figures had the oddest effect; they seemed as they ran like little
model
soldiers in a toy. This queer appearance of a house cut open gave
that
struggle amidst furniture and passages a quality of unreality. It
was
perhaps two hundred yards away from him, and very nearly fifty above
the
heads in the ruins below. The black and yellow men ran into an
open
archway, and turned and fired a volley. One of the blue pursuers
striding
forward close to the edge, flung up his arms, staggered sideways,
seemed
to Graham's sense to hang over the edge for several seconds, and
fell
headlong down. Graham saw him strike a projecting corner, fly out,
head
over heels, head over heels, and vanish behind the red arm of
the
building machine.
And then a shadow came between Graham and the sun. He looked up and
the
sky was clear, but he knew the little monoplane had passed. Ostrog
had
vanished. The man in yellow thrust before him, zealous and
perspiring,
pointing and blatant.
"They are grounding!" cried the man in yellow. "They are grounding.
Tell
the people to fire at him. Tell them to fire at him!"
Graham could not understand. He heard loud voices repeating
these
enigmatical orders.
Suddenly he saw the prow of the monoplane come gliding over the edge
of
the ruins and stop with a jerk. In a moment Graham understood that
the
thing had grounded in order that Ostrog might escape by it. He saw a
blue
haze climbing out of the gulf, perceived that the people below him
were
now firing up at the projecting stem.
A man beside him cheered hoarsely, and he saw that the blue rebels
had
gained the archway that had been contested by the men in black
and
yellow a moment before, and were running in a continual stream along
the
open passage.
And suddenly the monoplane slipped over the edge of the Council House
and
fell like a diving swallow. It dropped, tilting at an angle of
forty-five
degrees, so steeply that it seemed to Graham, it seemed perhaps to
most
of those below, that it could not possibly rise again.
It fell so closely past him that he could see Ostrog clutching the
guides
of the seat, with his grey hair streaming; see the white-faced
aeronaut
wrenching over the lever that turned the machine upward. He heard
the
apprehensive vague cry of innumerable men below.
Graham clutched the railing before him and gasped. The second seemed
an
age. The lower vane of the monoplane passed within an ace of touching
the
people, who yelled and screamed and trampled one another below.
And then it rose.
For a moment it looked as if it could not possibly clear the
opposite
cliff, and then that it could not possibly clear the wind-wheel
that
rotated beyond.
And behold! it was clear and soaring, still heeling sideways,
upward,
upward into the wind-swept sky.
The suspense of the moment gave place to a fury of exasperation as
the
swarming people realised that Ostrog had escaped them. With
belated
activity they renewed their fire, until the rattling wove into a
roar,
until the whole area became dim and blue and the air pungent with
the
thin smoke of their weapons.
Too late! The flying machine dwindled smaller and smaller, and
curved
about and swept gracefully downward to the flying stage from which it
had
so lately risen. Ostrog had escaped.
For a while a confused babblement arose from the ruins, and then
the
universal attention came back to Graham, perched high among
the
scaffolding. He saw the faces of the people turned towards him,
heard
their shouts at his rescue. From the throat of the ways came the song
of
the revolt spreading like a breeze across that swaying sea of men.
The little group of men about him shouted congratulations on his
escape.
The man in yellow was close to him, with a set face and shining eyes.
And
the song was rising, louder and louder; tramp, tramp, tramp, tramp.
Slowly the realisation came of the full meaning of these things to
him,
the perception of the swift change in his position. Ostrog, who had
stood
beside him whenever he had faced that shouting multitude before,
was
beyond there--the antagonist. There was no one to rule for him
any
longer. Even the people about him, the leaders and organisers of
the
multitude, looked to see what he would do, looked to him to act,
awaited
his orders. He was king indeed. His puppet reign was at an end.
He was very intent to do the thing that was expected of him. His
nerves
and muscles were quivering, his mind was perhaps a little confused,
but
he felt neither fear nor anger. His hand that had been trodden
upon
throbbed and was hot. He was a little nervous about his bearing. He
knew
he was not afraid, but he was anxious not to seem afraid. In his
former
life he had often been more excited in playing games of skill. He
was
desirous of immediate action, he knew he must not think too much
in
detail of the huge complexity of the struggle about him lest be should
be
paralysed by the sense of its intricacy.
Over there those square blue shapes, the flying stages, meant
Ostrog;
against Ostrog, who was so clear and definite and decisive, he who
was so
vague and undecided, was fighting for the whole future of the
world.
CHAPTER XXIII
GRAHAM SPEAKS HIS WORD
For a time the Master of the Earth was not even master of his own
mind.
Even his will seemed a will not his own, his own acts surprised him
and
were but a part of the confusion of strange experiences that
poured
across his being. These things were definite, the negroes were
coming,
Helen Wotton had warned the people of their coming, and he was Master
of
the Earth. Each of these facts seemed struggling for complete
possession
of his thoughts. They protruded from a background of swarming
halls,
elevated passages, rooms jammed with ward leaders in
council,
kinematograph and telephone rooms, and windows looking out on a
seething
sea of marching men. The men in yellow, and men whom he fancied
were
called Ward Leaders, were either propelling him forward or following
him
obediently; it was hard to tell. Perhaps they were doing a little
of
both. Perhaps some power unseen and unsuspected propelled them all.
He
was aware that he was going to make a proclamation to the People of
the
Earth, aware of certain grandiose phrases floating in his mind as
the
thing he meant to say. Many little things happened, and then he
found
himself with the man in yellow entering a little room where
this
proclamation of his was to be made.
This room was grotesquely latter-day in its appointments. In the
centre
was a bright oval lit by shaded electric lights from above. The rest
was
in shadow, and the double finely fitting doors through which he came
from
the swarming Hall of the Atlas made the place very still. The dead
thud
of these as they closed behind him, the sudden cessation of the tumult
in
which he had been living for hours, the quivering circle of light,
the
whispers and quick noiseless movements of vaguely visible attendants
in
the shadows, had a strange effect upon Graham. The huge ears of
a
phonographic mechanism gaped in a battery for his words, the black
eyes
of great photographic cameras awaited his beginning, beyond metal
rods
and coils glittered dimly, and something whirled about with a
droning
hum. He walked into the centre of the light, and his shadow drew
together
black and sharp to a little blot at his feet.
The vague shape of the thing he meant to say was already in his mind.
But
this silence, this isolation, the withdrawal from that contagious
crowd,
this audience of gaping, glaring machines, had not been in
his
anticipation. All his supports seemed withdrawn together; he seemed
to
have dropped into this suddenly, suddenly to have discovered himself.
In
a moment he was changed. He found that he now feared to be inadequate,
he
feared to be theatrical, he feared the quality of his voice, the
quality
of his wit; astonished, he turned to the man in yellow with
a
propitiatory gesture. "For a moment," he said, "I must wait. I did
not
think it would be like this. I must think of the thing I have to
say."
While he was still hesitating there came an agitated messenger with
news
that the foremost aeroplanes were passing over Madrid.
"What news of the flying stages?" he asked.
"The people of the south-west wards are ready."
"Ready!"
He turned impatiently to the blank circles of the lenses again.
"I suppose it must be a sort of speech. Would to God I knew certainly
the
thing that should be said! Aeroplanes at Madrid! They must have
started
before the main fleet.
"Oh! what can it matter whether I speak well or ill?" he said, and
felt
the light grow brighter.
He had framed some vague sentence of democratic sentiment when
suddenly
doubts overwhelmed him. His belief in his heroic quality and calling
he
found had altogether lost its assured conviction. The picture of
a
little strutting futility in a windy waste of incomprehensible
destinies
replaced it. Abruptly it was perfectly clear to him that this
revolt against
Ostrog was premature, foredoomed to failure, the impulse
of passionate
inadequacy against inevitable things. He thought of that
swift flight of
aeroplanes like the swoop of Fate towards him. He was
astonished that he
could have seen things in any other light. In that
final emergency he
debated, thrust debate resolutely aside, determined
at all costs to go
through with the thing he had undertaken. And he
could find no word to begin.
Even as he stood, awkward, hesitating,
with an indiscreet apology for his
inability trembling on his lips,
came the noise of many people crying out,
the running to and fro of
feet. "Wait," cried someone, and a door opened.
Graham turned, and the
watching lights waned.
Through the open doorway he saw a slight girlish figure approaching.
His
heart leapt. It was Helen Wotton. The man in yellow came out of
the
nearer shadows into the circle of light.
"This is the girl who told us what Ostrog had done," he said.
She came in very quietly, and stood still, as if she did not want
to
interrupt Graham's eloquence.... But his doubts and questionings
fled
before her presence. He remembered the things that he had meant to
say.
He faced the cameras again and the light about him grew brighter.
He
turned back to her.
"You have helped me," he said lamely--"helped me very much.... This
is
very difficult."
He paused. He addressed himself to the unseen multitudes who stared
upon
him through those grotesque black eyes. At first he spoke slowly.
"Men and women of the new age," he said; "you have arisen to do battle
for
the race!... There is no easy victory before us."
He stopped to gather words. He wished passionately for the gift of
moving
speech.
"This night is a beginning," he said. "This battle that is coming,
this
battle that rushes upon us to-night, is only a beginning. All your
lives,
it may be, you must fight. Take no thought though I am beaten, though
I
am utterly overthrown. I think I may be overthrown."
He found the thing in his mind too vague for words. He paused
momentarily,
and broke into vague exhortations, and then a rush of speech
came upon him.
Much that he said was but the humanitarian commonplace of
a vanished age, but
the conviction of his voice touched it to vitality.
He stated the case of the
old days to the people of the new age, to the
girl at his side.
"I come out of the past to you," he said, "with the memory of an age
that
hoped. My age was an age of dreams--of beginnings, an age of noble
hopes;
throughout the world we had made an end of slavery; throughout the
world we
had spread the desire and anticipation that wars might cease,
that all men
and women might live nobly, in freedom and peace.... So we
hoped in the days
that are past. And what of those hopes? How is it with
man after two hundred
years?
"Great cities, vast powers, a collective greatness beyond our dreams.
For
that we did not work, and that has come. But how is it with the
little
lives that make up this greater life? How is it with the common lives?
As
it has ever been--sorrow and labour, lives cramped and unfulfilled,
lives
tempted by power, tempted by wealth, and gone to waste and folly. The
old
faiths have faded and changed, the new faith--. Is there a new faith?
"Charity and mercy," he floundered; "beauty and the love of
beautiful
things--effort and devotion! Give yourselves as I would give
myself--as
Christ gave Himself upon the Cross. It does not matter if you
understand.
It does not matter if you seem to fail. You _know_--in the core
of your
hearts you _know_. There is no promise, there is no security--nothing
to
go upon but Faith. There is no faith but faith--faith which
is
courage...."
Things that he had long wished to believe, he found that he believed.
He
spoke gustily, in broken incomplete sentences, but with all his heart
and
strength, of this new faith within him. He spoke of the greatness
of
self-abnegation, of his belief in an immortal life of Humanity in
which
we live and move and have our being. His voice rose and fell, and
the
recording appliances hummed as he spoke, dim attendants watched him
out
of the shadow....
His sense of that silent spectator beside him sustained his sincerity.
For
a few glorious moments he was carried away; he felt no doubt of his
heroic
quality, no doubt of his heroic words, he had it all straight and
plain. His
eloquence limped no longer. And at last he made an end to
speaking. "Here and
now," he cried, "I make my will. All that is mine in
the world I give to the
people of the world. All that is mine in the
world I give to the people of
the world. To all of you. I give it to you,
and myself I give to you. And as
God wills to-night, I will live for you,
or I will die."
He ended. He found the light of his present exaltation reflected in
the
face of the girl. Their eyes met; her eyes were swimming with tears
of
enthusiasm.
"I knew," she whispered. "Oh! Father of the World--_Sire_! I knew
you
would say these things...."
"I have said what I could," he answered lamely and grasped and clung
to
her outstretched hands.
CHAPTER XXIV
WHILE THE AEROPLANES WERE COMING
The man in yellow was beside them. Neither had noted his coming. He
was
saying that the south-west wards were marching. "I never expected it
so
soon," he cried. "They have done wonders. You must send them a word
to
help them on their way."
Graham stared at him absent-mindedly. Then with a start he returned to
his
previous preoccupation about the flying stages.
"Yes," he said. "That is good, that is good." He weighed a message.
"Tell
them;--well done South West."
He turned his eyes to Helen Wotton again. His face expressed his
struggle
between conflicting ideas. "We must capture the flying stages,"
he
explained. "Unless we can do that they will land negroes. At all costs
we
must prevent that."
He felt even as he spoke that this was not what had been in his
mind
before the interruption. He saw a touch of surprise in her eyes.
She
seemed about to speak and a shrill bell drowned her voice.
It occurred to Graham that she expected him to lead these marching
people,
that that was the thing he had to do. He made the offer abruptly.
He
addressed the man in yellow, but he spoke to her. He saw her face
respond.
"Here I am doing nothing," he said.
"It is impossible," protested the man in yellow. "It is a fight in
a
warren. Your place is here."
He explained elaborately. He motioned towards the room where Graham
must
wait, he insisted no other course was possible. "We must know where
you
are," he said. "At any moment a crisis may arise needing your
presence
and decision."
A picture had drifted through his mind of such a vast dramatic struggle
as
the masses in the ruins had suggested. But here was no
spectacular
battle-field such as he imagined. Instead was seclusion--and
suspense. It
was only as the afternoon wore on that he pieced together a
truer picture
of the fight that was raging, inaudibly and invisibly, within
four miles
of him, beneath the Roehampton stage. A strange and unprecedented
contest
it was, a battle that was a hundred thousand little battles, a battle
in
a sponge of ways and channels, fought out of sight of sky or sun
under
the electric glare, fought out in a vast confusion by
multitudes
untrained in arms, led chiefly by acclamation, multitudes dulled
by
mindless labour and enervated by the tradition of two hundred years
of
servile security against multitudes demoralised by lives of
venial
privilege and sensual indulgence. They had no artillery,
no
differentiation into this force or that; the only weapon on either
side
was the little green metal carbine, whose secret manufacture and
sudden
distribution in enormous quantities had been one of Ostrog's
culminating
moves against the Council. Few had had any experience with this
weapon,
many had never discharged one, many who carried it came unprovided
with
ammunition; never was wilder firing in the history of warfare. It was
a
battle of amateurs, a hideous experimental warfare, armed
rioters
fighting armed rioters, armed rioters swept forward by the words and
fury
of a song, by the tramping sympathy of their numbers, pouring
in
countless myriads towards the smaller ways, the disabled lifts,
the
galleries slippery with blood, the halls and passages choked with
smoke,
beneath the flying stages, to learn there when retreat was hopeless
the
ancient mysteries of warfare. And overhead save for a few
sharpshooters
upon the roof spaces and for a few bands and threads of vapour
that
multiplied and darkened towards the evening, the day was a
clear
serenity. Ostrog it seems had no bombs at command and in all the
earlier
phases of the battle the flying machines played no part. Not the
smallest
cloud was there to break the empty brilliance of the sky. It seemed
as
though it held itself vacant until the aeroplanes should come.
Ever and again there was news of these, drawing nearer, from this
Spanish
town and then that, and presently from France. But of the new guns
that
Ostrog had made and which were known to be in the city came no news
in
spite of Graham's urgency, nor any report of successes from the
dense
felt of fighting strands about the flying stages. Section after
section
of the Labour-Societies reported itself assembled, reported
itself
marching, and vanished from knowledge into the labyrinth of that
warfare.
What was happening there? Even the busy ward leaders did not know.
In
spite of the opening and closing of doors, the hasty messengers,
the
ringing of bells and the perpetual clitter-clack of recording
implements,
Graham felt isolated, strangely inactive, inoperative.
His isolation seemed at times the strangest, the most unexpected of
all
the things that had happened since his awakening. It had something
of
the quality of that inactivity that comes in dreams. A tumult,
the
stupendous realisation of a world struggle between Ostrog and
himself,
and then this confined quiet little room with its mouthpieces and
bells
and broken mirror!
Now the door would be closed and Graham and Helen were alone
together;
they seemed sharply marked off then from all the unprecedented
world
storm that rushed together without, vividly aware of one another,
only
concerned with one another. Then the door would open again,
messengers
would enter, or a sharp bell would stab their quiet privacy, and
it was
like a window in a well built brightly lit house flung open suddenly
to a
hurricane. The dark hurry and tumult, the stress and vehemence of
the
battle rushed in and overwhelmed them. They were no longer persons
but
mere spectators, mere impressions of a tremendous convulsion. They
became
unreal even to themselves, miniatures of personality,
indescribably
small, and the two antagonistic realities, the only realities
in being
were first the city, that throbbed and roared yonder in a belated
frenzy
of defence and secondly the aeroplanes hurling inexorably towards
them
over the round shoulder of the world.
There came a sudden stir outside, a running to and fro, and cries.
The
girl stood up, speechless, incredulous.
Metallic voices were shouting "Victory!" Yes it was "Victory!"
Bursting through the curtains appeared the man in yellow, startled
and
dishevelled with excitement, "Victory," he cried, "victory! The
people
are winning. Ostrog's people have collapsed."
She rose. "Victory?"
"What do you mean?" asked Graham. "Tell me! _What_?"
"We have driven them out of the under galleries at Norwood, Streatham
is
afire and burning wildly, and Roehampton is ours. _Ours_!--and we
have
taken the monoplane that lay thereon."
A shrill bell rang. An agitated grey-headed man appeared from the room
of
the Ward Leaders. "It is all over," he cried.
"What matters it now that we have Roehampton? The aeroplanes have
been
sighted at Boulogne!"
"The Channel!" said the man in yellow. He calculated swiftly.
"Half an
hour."
"They still have three of the flying stages," said the old man.
"Those guns?" cried Graham.
"We cannot mount them--in half an hour."
"Do you mean they are found?"
"Too late," said the old man.
"If we could stop them another hour!" cried the man in yellow.
"Nothing can stop them now," said the old man. "They have near a
hundred
aeroplanes in the first fleet."
"Another hour?" asked Graham.
"To be so near!" said the Ward Leader. "Now that we have found
those guns.
To be so near--. If once we could get them out upon the
roof spaces."
"How long would that take?" asked Graham suddenly.
"An hour--certainly."
"Too late," cried the Ward Leader, "too late."
"_Is_ it too late?" said Graham. "Even now--. An hour!"
He had suddenly perceived a possibility. He tried to speak calmly, but
his
face was white. "There is are chance. You said there was a
monoplane--?"
"On the Roehampton stage, Sire."
"Smashed?"
"No. It is lying crossways to the carrier. It might be got upon
the
guides--easily. But there is no aeronaut--."
Graham glanced at the two men and then at Helen. He spoke after a
long
pause. "_We_ have no aeronauts?"
"None."
He turned suddenly to Helen. His decision was made. "I must do it."
"Do what?"
"Go to this flying stage--to this machine."
"What do you mean?"
"I am an aeronaut. After all--. Those days for which you reproached
me
were not altogether wasted."
He turned to the old man in yellow. "Tell them to put it upon
the
guides."
The man in yellow hesitated.
"What do you mean to do?" cried Helen.
"This monoplane--it is a chance--."
"You don't mean--?"
"To fight--yes. To fight in the air. I have thought before--. A
big
aeroplane is a clumsy thing. A resolute man--!"
"But--never since flying began--" cried the man in yellow.
"There has been no need. But now the time has come. Tell them
now--send
them my message--to put it upon the guides. I see now something to
do. I
see now why I am here!"
The old man dumbly interrogated the man in yellow nodded, and
hurried
out.
Helen made a step towards Graham. Her face was white. "But, Sire!--How
can
one fight? You will be killed."
"Perhaps. Yet, not to do it--or to let some one else attempt it--."
"You will be killed," she repeated.
"I've said my word. Do you not see? It may save--London!"
He stopped, he could speak no more, he swept the alternative aside by
a
gesture, and they stood looking at one another.
They were both clear that he must go. There was no step back from
these
towering heroisms.
Her eyes brimmed with tears. She came towards him with a curious
movement
of her hands, as though she felt her way and could not see; she
seized
his hand and kissed it.
"To wake," she cried, "for this!"
He held her clumsily for a moment, and kissed the hair of her bowed
head,
and then thrust her away, and turned towards the man in yellow.
He could not speak. The gesture of his arm said "Onward."
CHAPTER XXV
THE COMING OF THE AEROPLANES
Two men in pale blue were lying in the irregular line that
stretched
along the edge of the captured Roehampton stage from end to end,
grasping
their carbines and peering into the shadows of the stage called
Wimbledon
Park. Now and then they spoke to one another. They spoke the
mutilated
English of their class and period. The fire of the Ostrogites
had
dwindled and ceased, and few of the enemy had been seen for some
time.
But the echoes of the fight that was going on now far below in the
lower
galleries of that stage, came every now and then between the staccato
of
shots from the popular side. One of these men was describing to the
other
how he had seen a man down below there dodge behind a girder, and
had
aimed at a guess and hit him cleanly as he dodged too far. "He's
down
there still," said the marksman. "See that little patch. Yes.
Between
those bars."
A few yards behind them lay a dead stranger, face upward to the sky,
with
the blue canvas of his jacket smouldering in a circle about the
neat
bullet hole on his chest. Close beside him a wounded man, with a
leg
swathed about, sat with an expressionless face and watched the
progress
of that burning. Behind them, athwart the carrier lay the
captured
monoplane.
"I can't see him _now_," said the second man in a tone of provocation.
The marksman became foul-mouthed and high-voiced in his earnest
endeavour
to make things plain. And suddenly, interrupting him, came a
noisy shouting
from the substage.
"What's going on now?" he said, and raised himself on one arm to
survey
the stairheads in the central groove of the stage. A number of
blue
figures were coming up these, and swarming across the stage.
"We don't want all these fools," said his friend. "They only crowd up
and
spoil shots. What are they after?"
"Ssh!--they're shouting something."
The two men listened. The new-comers had crowded densely about
the
machine. Three Ward Leaders, conspicuous by their black mantles
and
badges, clambered into the body and appeared above it. The rank and
file
flung themselves upon the vans, gripping hold of the edges, until
the
entire outline of the thing was manned, in some places three deep. One
of
the marksmen knelt up. "They're putting it on the carrier--that's
what
they're after."
He rose to his feet, his friend rose also. "What's the good?" said
his
friend. "We've got no aeronauts."
"That's what they're doing anyhow." He looked at his rifle, looked at
the
struggling crowd, and suddenly turned to the wounded man. "Mind
these,
mate," he said, handing his carbine and cartridge belt; and in a
moment
he was running towards the monoplane. For a quarter of an hour he
was
lugging, thrusting, shouting and heeding shouts, and then the thing
was
done, and he stood with a multitude of others cheering their
own
achievement. By this time he knew, what indeed everyone in the city
knew,
that the Master, raw learner though he was, intended to fly this
machine
himself, was coming even now to take control of it, would let no
other
man attempt it.
"He who takes the greatest danger, he who bears the heaviest burden,
that
man is King," so the Master was reported to have spoken. And even as
this man
cheered, and while the beads of sweat still chased one another
from the
disorder of his hair, he heard the thunder of a greater tumult,
and in fitful
snatches the beat and impulse of the revolutionary song. He
saw through a gap
in the people that a thick stream of heads still poured
up the stairway. "The
Master is coming," shouted voices, "the Master is
coming," and the crowd
about him grew denser and denser. He began to
thrust himself towards the
central groove. "The Master is coming!" "The
Sleeper, the Master!" "God and
the Master!" roared the voices.
And suddenly quite close to him were the black uniforms of
the
revolutionary guard, and for the first and last time in his life he
saw
Graham, saw him quite nearly. A tall, dark man in a flowing black robe
he
was, with a white, resolute face and eyes fixed steadfastly before him;
a
man who for all the little things about him had neither ears nor eyes
nor
thoughts....
For all his days that man remembered the passing of Graham's
bloodless
face. In a moment it had gone and he was fighting in the swaying
crowd. A
lad weeping with terror thrust against him, pressing towards
the
stairways, yelling "Clear for the start, you fools!" The bell
that
cleared the flying stage became a loud unmelodious clanging.
With that clanging in his ears Graham drew near the monoplane,
marched
into the shadow of its tilting wing. He became aware that a number
of
people about him were offering to accompany him, and waved their
offers
aside. He wanted to think how one started the engine. The bell
clanged
faster and faster, and the feet of the retreating people roared
faster
and louder. The man in yellow was assisting him to mount through the
ribs
of the body. He clambered into the aeronaut's place, fixing himself
very
carefully and deliberately. What was it? The man in yellow was
pointing
to two small flying machines driving upward in the southern sky. No
doubt
they were looking for the coming aeroplanes. That--presently--the
thing
to do now was to start. Things were being shouted at him,
questions,
warnings. They bothered him. He wanted to think about the machine,
to
recall every item of his previous experience. He waved the people
from
him, saw the man in yellow dropping off through the ribs, saw the
crowd
cleft down the line of the girders by his gesture.
For a moment he was motionless, staring at the levers, the wheel by
which
the engine shifted, and all the delicate appliances of which he knew
so
little. His eye caught a spirit level with the bubble towards him, and
he
remembered something, spent a dozen seconds in swinging the
engine
forward until the bubble floated in the centre of the tube. He noted
that
the people were not shouting, knew they watched his deliberation.
A
bullet smashed on the bar above his head. Who fired? Was the line
clear
of people? He stood up to see and sat down again.
In another second the propeller was spinning and he was rushing down
the
guides. He gripped the wheel and swung the engine back to lift the
stem.
Then it was the people shouted. In a moment he was throbbing with
the
quiver of the engine, and the shouts dwindled swiftly behind, rushed
down
to silence. The wind whistled over the edges of the screen, and the
world
sank away from him very swiftly.
Throb, throb, throb--throb, throb, throb; up he drove. He fancied
himself
free of all excitement, felt cool and deliberate. He lifted the
stem still
more, opened one valve on his left wing and swept round and
up. He looked
down with a steady head, and up. One of the Ostrogite
monoplanes was driving
across his course, so that he drove obliquely
towards it and would pass below
it at a steep angle. Its little
aeronauts were peering down at him. What did
they mean to do? His mind
became active. One, he saw held a weapon pointing,
seemed prepared to
fire. What did they think he meant to do? In a moment he
understood
their tactics, and his resolution was taken. His momentary
lethargy was
past. He opened two more valves to his left, swung round, end on
to this
hostile machine, closed his valves, and shot straight at it, stem
and
wind-screen shielding him from the shot. They tilted a little as if
to
clear him. He flung up his stem.
Throb, throb, throb--pause--throb, throb--he set his teeth, his face
into
an involuntary grimace, and crash! He struck it! He struck upward
beneath
the nearer wing.
Very slowly the wing of his antagonist seemed to broaden as the impetus
of
his blow turned it up. He saw the full breadth of it and then it
slid
downward out of his sight.
He felt his stem going down, his hands tightened on the levers,
whirled
and rammed the engine back. He felt the jerk of a clearance, the nose
of
the machine jerked upward steeply, and for a moment he seemed to
be
lying on his back. The machine was reeling and staggering, it seemed
to
be dancing on its screw. He made a huge effort, hung for a moment on
the
levers, and slowly the engine came forward again. He was driving
upward
but no longer so steeply. He gasped for a moment and flung himself at
the
levers again. The wind whistled about him. One further effort and he
was
almost level. He could breathe. He turned his head for the first time
to
see what had become of his antagonists. Turned back to the levers for
a
moment and looked again. For a moment he could have believed they
were
annihilated. And then he saw between the two stages to the east was
a
chasm, and down this something, a slender edge, fell swiftly
and
vanished, as a sixpence falls down a crack.
At first he did not understand, and then a wild joy possessed him.
He
shouted at the top of his voice, an inarticulate shout, and drove
higher
and higher up the sky. Throb, throb, throb, pause, throb, throb,
throb.
"Where was the other?" he thought. "They too--." As he looked round
the
empty heavens he had a momentary fear that this second machine had
risen
above him, and then he saw it alighting on the Norwood stage. They
had
meant shooting. To risk being rammed headlong two thousand feet in
the
air was beyond their latter-day courage....
For a little while he circled, then swooped in a steep descent towards
the
westward stage. Throb throb throb, throb throb throb. The twilight
was
creeping on apace, the smoke from the Streatham stage that had been
so dense
and dark, was now a pillar of fire, and all the laced curves of
the moving
ways and the translucent roofs and domes and the chasms
between the buildings
were glowing softly now, lit by the tempered
radiance of the electric light
that the glare of the day overpowered. The
three efficient stages that the
Ostrogites held--for Wimbledon Park was
useless because of the fire from
Roehampton, and Streatham was a
furnace--were glowing with guide lights for
the coming aeroplanes. As he
swept over the Roehampton stage he saw the dark
masses of the people
thereon. He heard a clap of frantic cheering, heard a
bullet from the
Wimbledon Park stage tweet through the air, and went beating
up above the
Surrey wastes. He felt a breath of wind from the southwest, and
lifted
his westward wing as he had learnt to do, and so drove upward
heeling
into the rare swift upper air. Whirr, whirr, whirr.
Up he drove and up, to that pulsating rhythm, until the country
beneath
was blue and indistinct, and London spread like a little map traced
in
light, like the mere model of a city near the brim of the horizon.
The
southwest was a sky of sapphire over the shadowy rim of the world,
and
ever as he drove upward the multitude of stars increased.
And behold! In the southward, low down and glittering swiftly nearer,
were
two little patches of nebulous light. And then two more, and then a
glow of
swiftly driving shapes. Presently he could count them. There were
four and
twenty. The first fleet of aeroplanes had come! Beyond appeared
a yet greater
glow.
He swept round in a half circle, staring at this advancing fleet. It
flew
in a wedge-like shape, a triangular flight of gigantic
phosphorescent
shapes sweeping nearer through the lower air. He made a swift
calculation
of their pace, and spun the little wheel that brought the engine
forward.
He touched a lever and the throbbing effort of the engine ceased.
He
began to fall, fell swifter and swifter. He aimed at the apex of
the
wedge. He dropped like a stone through the whistling air. It
seemed
scarce a second from that soaring moment before he struck the
foremost
aeroplane.
No man of all that black multitude saw the coming of his fate, no
man
among them dreamt of the hawk that struck downward upon him out of
the
sky. Those who were not limp in the agonies of air-sickness, were
craning
their black necks and staring to see the filmy city that was rising
out
of the haze, the rich and splendid city to which "Massa Boss" had
brought
their obedient muscles. Bright teeth gleamed and the glossy faces
shone.
They had heard of Paris. They knew they were to have lordly times
among
the poor white trash.
Suddenly Graham hit them.
He had aimed at the body of the aeroplane, but at the very last instant
a
better idea had flashed into his mind. He twisted about and struck
near
the edge of the starboard wing with all his accumulated weight. He
was
jerked back as he struck. His prow went gliding across its smooth
expanse
towards the rim. He felt the forward rush of the huge fabric sweeping
him
and his monoplane along with it, and for a moment that seemed an age
he
could not tell what was happening. He heard a thousand throats
yelling,
and perceived that his machine was balanced on the edge of the
gigantic
float, and driving down, down; glanced over his shoulder and saw
the
backbone of the aeroplane and the opposite float swaying up. He had
a
vision through the ribs of sliding chairs, staring faces, and
hands
clutching at the tilting guide bars. The fenestrations in the
further
float flashed open as the aeronaut tried to right her. Beyond, he saw
a
second aeroplane leaping steeply to escape the whirl of its
heeling
fellow. The broad area of swaying wings seemed to jerk upward. He
felt he
had dropped clear, that the monstrous fabric, clean overturned, hung
like
a sloping wall above him.
He did not clearly understand that he had struck the side float of
the
aeroplane and slipped off, but he perceived that he was flying free
on
the down glide and rapidly nearing earth. What had he done? His
heart
throbbed like a noisy engine in his throat and for a perilous instant
he
could not move his levers because of the paralysis of his hands.
He
wrenched the levers to throw his engine back, fought for two
seconds
against the weight of it, felt himself righting, driving
horizontally,
set the engine beating again.
He looked upward and saw two aeroplanes glide shouting far
overhead,
looked back, and saw the main body of the fleet opening out and
rushing
upward and outward; saw the one he had struck fall edgewise on and
strike
like a gigantic knife-blade along the wind-wheels below it.
He put down his stern and looked again. He drove up heedless of
his
direction as he watched. He saw the wind-vanes give, saw the huge
fabric
strike the earth, saw its downward vanes crumple with the weight of
its
descent, and then the whole mass turned over and smashed, upside
down,
upon the sloping wheels. Then from the heaving wreckage a thin tongue
of
white fire licked up towards the zenith. He was aware of a huge
mass
flying through the air towards him, and turned upwards just in time
to
escape the charge--if it was a charge--of a second aeroplane. It
whirled
by below, sucked him down a fathom, and nearly turned him over in
the
gust of its close passage.
He became aware of three others rushing towards him, aware of the
urgent
necessity of beating above them. Aeroplanes were all about him,
circling
wildly to avoid him, as it seemed. They drove past him, above,
below,
eastward and westward. Far away to the westward was the sound of
a
collision, and two falling flares. Far away to the southward a
second
squadron was coming. Steadily he beat upward. Presently all
the
aeroplanes were below him, but for a moment he doubted the height he
had
of them, and did not swoop again. And then he came down upon a
second
victim and all its load of soldiers saw him coming. The big
machine
heeled and swayed as the fear-maddened men scrambled to the stern
for
their weapons. A score of bullets sung through the air, and there
flashed
a star in the thick glass wind-screen that protected him. The
aeroplane
slowed and dropped to foil his stroke, and dropped too low. Just in
time
he saw the wind-wheels of Bromley hill rushing up towards him, and
spun
about and up as the aeroplane he had chased crashed among them. All
its
voices wove into a felt of yelling. The great fabric seemed to
be
standing on end for a second among the heeling and splintering vans,
and
then it flew to pieces. Huge splinters came flying through the air,
its
engines burst like shells. A hot rush of flame shot overhead into
the
darkling sky.
"_Two_!" he cried, with a bomb from overhead bursting as it fell,
and
forthwith he was beating up again. A glorious exhilaration possessed
him
now, a giant activity. His troubles about humanity, about his
inadequacy,
were gone for ever. He was a man in battle rejoicing in his
power.
Aeroplanes seemed radiating from him in every direction, intent only
upon
avoiding him, the yelling of their packed passengers came in short
gusts
as they swept by. He chose his third quarry, struck hastily and did
but
turn it on edge. It escaped him, to smash against the tall cliff
of
London wall. Flying from that impact he skimmed the darkling ground
so
nearly he could see a frightened rabbit bolting up a slope. He jerked
up
steeply, and found himself driving over south London with the air
about
him vacant. To the right of him a wild riot of signal rockets from
the
Ostrogites banged tumultuously in the sky. To the south the wreckage
of
half a dozen air ships flamed, and east and west and north they
fled
before him. They drove away to the east and north, and went about in
the
south, for they could not pause in the air. In their present
confusion
any attempt at evolution would have meant disastrous
collisions.
He passed two hundred feet or so above the Roehampton stage. It was
black
with people and noisy with their frantic shouting. But why was
the
Wimbledon Park stage black and cheering, too? The smoke and flame
of
Streatham now hid the three further stages. He curved about and rose
to
see them and the northern quarters. First came the square masses
of
Shooter's Hill into sight, from behind the smoke, lit and orderly
with
the aeroplane that had landed and its disembarking negroes. Then
came
Blackheath, and then under the corner of the reek the Norwood stage.
On
Blackheath no aeroplane had landed. Norwood was covered by a swarm
of
little figures running to and fro in a passionate confusion.
Why?
Abruptly he understood. The stubborn defence of the flying stages
was
over, the people were pouring into the under-ways of these
last
strongholds of Ostrog's usurpation. And then, from far away on
the
northern border of the city, full of glorious import to him, came
a
sound, a signal, a note of triumph, the leaden thud of a gun. His
lips
fell apart, his face was disturbed with emotion.
He drew an immense breath. "They win," he shouted to the empty air;
"the
people win!" The sound of a second gun came like an answer. And then
he
saw the monoplane on Blackheath was running down its guides to launch.
It
lifted clean and rose. It shot up into the air, driving
straight
southward and away from him.
In an instant it came to him what this meant. It must needs be Ostrog
in
flight. He shouted and dropped towards it. He had the momentum of
his
elevation and fell slanting down the air and very swiftly. It rose
steeply at
his approach. He allowed for its velocity and drove
straight upon it.
It suddenly became a mere flat edge, and behold! he was past it,
and
driving headlong down with all the force of his futile blow.
He was furiously angry. He reeled the engine back along its shaft and
went
circling up. He saw Ostrog's machine beating up a spiral before
him. He rose
straight towards it, won above it by virtue of the impetus
of his swoop and
by the advantage and weight of a man. He dropped
headlong--dropped and missed
again! As he rushed past he saw the face of
Ostrog's aeronaut confident and
cool and in Ostrog's attitude a wincing
resolution. Ostrog was looking
steadfastly away from him--to the south.
He realized with a gleam of wrath
how bungling his flight must be. Below
he saw the Croydon hills. He jerked
upward and once more he gained on
his enemy.
He glanced over his shoulder and his attention was arrested. The
eastward
stage, the one on Shooter's Hill, appeared to lift; a flash
changing to a
tall grey shape, a cowled figure of smoke and dust, jerked
into the air. For
a moment this cowled figure stood motionless, dropping
huge masses of metal
from its shoulders, and then it began to uncoil a
dense head of smoke. The
people had blown it up, aeroplane and all! As
suddenly a second flash and
grey shape sprang up from the Norwood stage.
And even as he stared at this
came a dead report; and the air wave of the
first explosion struck him. He
was flung up and sideways.
For a moment his monoplane fell nearly edgewise with her nose down,
and
seemed to hesitate whether to overset altogether. He stood on
his
wind-shield, wrenching the wheel that swayed up over his head. And
then
the shock of the second explosion took his machine sideways.
He found himself clinging to one of the ribs of his machine, and the
air
was blowing past him and _upward_. He seemed to be hanging quite
still in the
air, with the wind blowing up past him. It occurred to him
that he was
falling. Then he was sure that he was falling. He could not
look down.
He found himself recapitulating with incredible swiftness all that
had
happened since his awakening, the days of doubt, the days of Empire,
and
at last the tumultuous discovery of Ostrog's calculated treachery.
The vision had a quality of utter unreality. Who was he? Why was
he
holding so tightly with his hands? Why could he not let go? In such
a
fall as this countless dreams have ended. But in a moment he
would
wake....
His thoughts ran swifter and swifter. He wondered if he should see
Helen
again. It seemed so unreasonable that he should not see her again.
It
_must_ be a dream! Yet surely he would meet her. She at least was
real.
She was real. He would wake and meet her.
Although he could not look at it, he was suddenly aware that the earth
was
very near.
THE END.